Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n prove_v scripture_n tradition_n 4,648 5 9.5709 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27069 Which is the true church? the whole Christian world, as headed only by Christ ... or, the Pope of Rome and his subjects as such? : in three parts ... / by Richard Baxter ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1679 (1679) Wing B1453; ESTC R1003 229,673 156

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

church_n still_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o there_o be_v any_o general_a council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n and_o why_o do_v not_o hierome_n chrysostome_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n exhort_v me●…_n and_o woman_n to_o read_v the_o council_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o methinks_v you_o shall_v allow_v the_o scripture_n a_o equality_n with_o council_n but_o if_o god_n have_v speak_v that_o which_o be_v nonsense_n or_o unintelligible_a till_o council_n or_o lope_n expound_v it_o scripture_n be_v far_o from_o have_v such_o equality_n then_o paul_n and_o peter_n speak_v not_o intelligible_o but_o p._n paul_n 4_o and_o 5._o and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v then_o council_n may_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o scripture_n but_o scripture_n can_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o council_n and_o do_v all_o the_o papist_n man_n and_o woman_n know_v the_o council_n in_o short_a if_o a_o tyrannical_a sect_n of_o priest_n can_v get_v this_o monopoly_n or_o peculiar_a of_o expound_v all_o god_n law_n and_o word_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n will_v not_o save_v any_o but_o by_o their_o exposition_n it_o will_v become_v more_o the_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n than_o of_o god_n and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v every_o priest_n must_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o we_o that_o never_o see_v they_o and_o must_v be_v the_o immediate_a object_n of_o our_o infallible_a belief_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o communicate_v to_o so_o great_a a_o swarm_n the_o sweetness_n of_o participate_v in_o his_o universal_a dominion_n and_o infallibility_n no_o wonder_n if_o self-love_n bid_v they_o serve_v his_o usurpation_n but_o by_o that_o time_n every_o woman_n must_v be_v sure_a 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n general_n indeed_o 2._o that_o with_o a_o council_n he_o be_v infallible_a 3._o and_o that_o god_n revelation_n must_v be_v receive_v only_o on_o this_o deliverer_n authority_n 4._o and_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o on_o his_o exposition_n 5._o and_o know_v how_o man_n believe_v the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o such_o pope_n or_o council_n ever_o be_v 6._o and_o can_v tell_v certain_o which_o council_n be_v true_a and_o which_o false_a and_o which_o of_o they_o must_v be_v believe_v and_o which_o not_o 7._o and_o be_v sure_a that_o every_o priest_n do_v infallible_o report_v all_o this_o to_o she_o 8._o and_o do_v give_v a_o true_a exposition_n of_o each_o council_n before_o another_o council_n do_v expound_v they_o 9_o and_o be_v sure_a that_o she_o have_v all_o that_o those_o council_n have_v make_v necessary_a and_o have_v not_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o more_o i_o say_v by_o that_o time_n all_o this_o certainty_n be_v attain_v the_o popish_a faith_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v hard_a work_n than_o they_o think_v that_o hear_v deceiver_n say_v believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v judge_v how_o far_o the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o above_o god_n when_o it_o be_v thus_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o nor_o no_o man_n believe_v with_o a_o divine_a and_o save_v faith_n any_o one_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o believe_v it_o mere_o because_o god_n have_v give_v it_o we_o in_o the_o seal_a scripture_n and_o add_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n §_o 12._o my_o next_o argument_n be_v those_o that_o explicit_o profess_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o church_n creed_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o holy_a truth_n and_o implicit_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o be_v willing_a and_o diligent_a for_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o obey_v all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o they_o know_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o again_o the_o formalist_n want_v form_n a_o enumeration_n of_o particular_n in_o a_o description_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o a_o universal_a with_o he_o unless_o he_o read_v all_o and_o then_o he_o deny_v the_o major_a 1._o because_o our_o general_n profession_n be_v contradict_v in_o particular_n answ._n 1._o bare_a accusation_n without_o proof_n be_v more_o easy_a than_o honest_a 2._o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n direct_v and_o understand_v which_o prove_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o believe_v and_o a_o contradiction_n by_o consequence_n not_o understand_v which_o stand_v with_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o latter_a all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n have_v that_o have_v any_o moral_a error_n 3._o o_o what_o self-condemning_a man_n be_v these_o how_o certain_o have_v a_o papist_n no_o true_a faith_n if_o abundance_n of_o contrary_a error_n nullify_v faith_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v you_o distinguish_v not_o between_o implicit_o contain_v in_o general_a principle_n and_o explicit_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n answ._n a_o very_a logical_a answer_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o do_v it_o his_o three_o be_v the_o strength_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v not_o enough_o tradition_n and_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v believe_v answ._n 1._o i_o will_v matter_n of_o practice_n be_v more_o at_o liberty_n that_o prince_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o murder_n or_o exterminate_v all_o their_o subject_n as_o heretic_n that_o will_v not_o be_v heretic_n and_o inhuman_a and_o to_o rebel_v perfidious_o against_o those_o prince_n that_o be_v sentence_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o not_o do_v it_o 2._o alas_o who_o can_v be_v save_v on_o these_o man_n term_n if_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o faith_n big_a enough_o to_o save_v he_o and_o yet_o perhaps_o you_o may_v hear_v again_o that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o any_o of_o all_o this_o save_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o subject_n be_v the_o infallible_a church_n universal_a and_o it_o be_v but_o prove_v a_o insufficient_a proposal_n and_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o tradition_n council_n scripture_n creed_n and_o all_o and_o never_o be_v the_o proposal_n of_o council_n more_o insufficient_a than_o when_o council_n be_v most_o frequent_a when_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o constantius_n valens_n valentinian_n theodosius_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n good_a theodosius_n junior_a marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastasius_n justin_n justinian_n and_o long_o after_o anathematise_v one_o general_n council_n and_o cry_v up_o another_o and_o set_v council_n against_o council_n be_v too_o much_o of_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o time_n 4._o again_o he_o deny_v that_o protestant_n not_o excuse_v by_o invincible_a ignorance_n believe_v any_o article_n with_o a_o save_v faith_n answ._n easie_n dispute_v can_v a_o quaker_n say_v so_o too_o by_o we_o and_o you_o but_o how_o unhappy_a a_o thing_n be_v knowledge_n then_o and_o how_o bless_v a_o thing_n be_v invincible_a ignorance_n which_o may_v prevent_v so_o many_o man_n damnation_n §_o 13._o i_o prove_v the_o major_a by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o many_o papist_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la to_o which_o he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o our_o question_n be_v not_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v express_o only_a but_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v both_o express_o and_o implicit_o of_o all_o christian_n respective_o answ._n reader_n judge_n with_o what_o ingenuity_n these_o man_n dispute_v and_o how_o they_o make_v nothing_o of_o give_v up_o all_o their_o cause_n and_o yet_o cant_v on_o with_o any_o of_o the_o most_o senseless_a word_n he_o have_v large_o enough_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o general_n truth_n explicit_o be_v the_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o contain_v particular_n though_o unknown_a to_o the_o believer_n i_o be_o now_o prove_v that_o protestant_n explicit_a faith_n leave_v out_o no_o article_n necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v to_o this_o end_n i_o cite_v bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n and_o after_o many_o other_o confess_v what_o i_o say_v in_o plain_a word_n even_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o enumeration_n he_o deny_v none_o of_o my_o proof_n as_o to_o explicit_a belief_n and_o do_v we_o need_v any_o more_o be_v not_o all_o that_o which_o he_o call_v explicit_a belief_n the_o mere_a denomination_n of_o the_o explicite_fw-la from_o the_o particular_n employ_v in_o it_o can_v any_o man_n want_v a_o implicit_a belief_n that_o want_v no_o explicite_fw-la belief_n if_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o the_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o tradition_n or_o expounder_n of_o scripture_n or_o my_o rightful_a governor_n how_o be_o i_o
bind_v or_o how_o can_v i_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v implicit_o their_o unknown_a doctrine_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n what_o be_v my_o implicit_a belief_n of_o scripture-particle_n but_o my_o general_n belief_n that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o true_a and_o what_o be_v implicit_a belief_n of_o popish_a tradition_n in_o particular_a but_o the_o explicit_a belief_n that_o all_o popish_a tradition_n in_o general_n be_v true_a if_o therefore_o these_o disputer_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a neccessary_a belief_n and_o yet_o damn_v we_o for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o our_o implicit_a belief_n they_o shameful_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n §_o 14._o next_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o sincere_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v or_o as_o bellarmine_n speak_v live_v member_n then_o profess_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o extrinsecal_o denominate_v or_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a consist_v of_o professor_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o when_o i_o have_v give_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n undeniable_a and_o say_v i_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a he_o say_v you_o prove_v say_v you_o your_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a which_o be_v a_o syntax_n in_o logic_n and_o deserve_v a_o ferula_fw-la for_o no_o minor_a can_v be_v a_o antecedent_n answ._n for_o this_o man_n sake_n i_o will_v know_v a_o man_n better_o than_o by_o his_o hector_n before_o i_o will_v go_v to_o school_n to_o a_o boaster_n reader_n 1._o what_o be_v that_o error_n in_o logic_n that_o be_v call_v a_o syntax_n i_o think_v order_n or_o concord_n have_v be_v no_o error_n i_o confess_v myself_o not_o wise_a enough_o to_o understand_v this_o great_a logician_n and_o his_o ferula_fw-la be_v too_o ready_a which_o must_v be_v use_v for_o syntax_n when_o it_o be_v more_o use_v for_o violation_n of_o syntax_n 2._o risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la can_v no_o antecedent_n be_v a_o minor_a so_o do_v dr._n peter_n heylin_n tell_v i_o before_o he_o in_o his_o certamen_fw-la epistolare_fw-la i_o suppose_v i_o shall_v never_o hear_v a_o three_o say_v so_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n that_o the_o boy_n laugh_v at_o this_o and_o say_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n of_o a_o hypothetical_a proposition_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v all_o one_o be_v it_o that_o boy_n have_v make_v all_o our_o usual_a logick_n and_o now_o these_o two_o logic_n doctor_n have_v reform_v they_o or_o have_v this_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o champion_n in_o that_o art_n in_o which_o he_o be_v below_o the_o novice_n he_o have_v hit_v it_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v to_o his_o offer_n to_o dispute_v before_o a_o lady_n a_o girl_n only_o in_o syllogism_n by_o the_o pen_n for_o this_o with_o she_o may_v have_v pass_v for_o currant_n and_o invincible_a logic_n §_o 15._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a thus_o all_o that_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o special_a love_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o unfeigned_a willingness_n to_o obey_v he_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v but_o such_o be_v all_o sincere_a protestant_n etc._n etc._n this_o minor_a the_o man_n deny_v and_o say_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o these_o thing_n answ._n 1._o mark_v how_o hard_o this_o man_n be_v put_v to_o it_o to_o renounce_v his_o charity_n he_o can_v do_v it_o without_o deny_v what_o he_o grant_v a_o sincere_a professor_n of_o any_o religion_n be_v one_o that_o real_o be_v what_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v he_o deny_v not_o that_o protestant_n profess_v to_o love_n god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a that_o sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n god_n as_o if_o he_o that_o sincere_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n do_v not_o love_v he_o these_o be_v papist_n syllogism_n 2._o note_v that_o this_o man_n seem_v to_o know_v all_o protestant_n heart_n better_o than_o they_o do_v themselves_o and_o can_v prove_v they_o all_o hypocrite_n that_o love_v not_o god_n 3._o but_o by_o this_o you_o see_v how_o he_o reproach_v all_o those_o protestant_n that_o turn_v papist_n as_o have_v all_o be_v but_o before_o but_o graceless_a ungodly_a hypocrite_n and_o what_o wonder_v then_o if_o they_o turn_v 4._o but_o it_o may_v be_v his_o word_n formal_o be_v a_o cheat_n a_o protestant_n be_v a_o christian_a renounce_v popery_n it_o be_v his_o christianity_n which_o contain_v his_o love_n to_o god_n his_o renounce_v popery_n be_v but_o his_o freedom_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o perhaps_o the_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o call_v this_o the_o form_n of_o protestant_n but_o i_o hope_v his_o talk_n shall_v not_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o of_o our_o neighbour_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n any_o man_n that_o can_v true_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n without_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v argument_n enough_o to_o answer_v any_o papist_n in_o himself_n 5._o again_o reader_n mark_v how_o much_o these_o man_n magnify_v themselves_o and_o how_o much_o they_o vilify_v the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o god_n let_v a_o man_n see_v all_o god_n wonderful_a goodness_n in_o his_o work_n and_o in_o his_o mercy_n to_o himself_o and_o all_o mankind_n let_v he_o read_v and_o believe_v all_o the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o the_o father_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o son_n that_o be_v describe_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n let_v he_o believe_v the_o promise_n there_o record_v of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o all_o this_o be_v insufficient_a to_o cause_v he_o save_o to_o love_n god_n or_o man_n but_o let_v he_o but_o add_v the_o belief_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o council_n must_v be_v believe_v in_o all_o their_o tradition_n and_o exposition_n and_o then_o the_o work_n will_v be_v do_v and_o he_o may_v love_n god_n unseigned_o and_o be_v love_v by_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o work_v by_o the_o scripture_n unless_o we_o take_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o expositor_n yea_o more_o if_o a_o man_n never_o hear_v of_o scripture_n or_o if_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n for_o want_v of_o the_o pope_n sufficient_a proposal_n he_o may_v love_n god_n and_o be_v save_v so_o he_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o council_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proposer_n and_o be_v there_o any_o account_n in_o reason_n to_o be_v give_v of_o this_o strange_a phaenomenon_n why_o a_o man_n can_v love_n god_n if_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o can_v love_v he_o by_o all_o his_o work_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o as_o very_o a_o miracle_n as_o transubstantiation_n and_o sanctification_n by_o holy-water_n or_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la and_o one_o of_o those_o miracle_n that_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n §_o 16._o but_o he_o repeat_v again_o the_o threadbare_a reason_n have_v they_o this_o they_o will_v never_o have_v disobey_v and_o disbelieved_a all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n answ._n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n who_o be_v against_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o yearly_o anathematise_v by_o the_o greek_n who_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o one_o empire_n have_v try_v to_o make_v up_o the_o loss_n by_o lay_v claim_n to_o all_o the_o earth_n o_o of_o what_o consequence_n be_v obedience_n to_o a_o ambitious_a pope_n or_o priest_n in_o comparison_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o write_v law_n of_o god_n §_o 17._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a two_o way_n 1._o if_o this_o the_o love_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v in_o our_o profession_n than_o the_o sincere_a be_v such_o indeed_o but_o this_o be_v in_o our_o profession_n ergo_fw-la of_o this_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o profession_n what_o not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o understand_v and_o obey_v his_o word_n be_v he_o not_o drive_v up_o to_o the_o wall_n even_o to_o another_o denial_n of_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n do_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o while_o i_o write_v these_o word_n and_o have_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o in_o sixty_o volume_n and_o more_o and_o do_v not_o protestant_a library_n contain_v such_o profession_n and_o their_o pulpit_n ring_v of_o they_o every_o lord_n day_n what_o be_v a_o profession_n but_o word_n and_o write_n and_o be_v not_o these_o audible_a and_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o the_o deny_v not_o of_o the_o
be_v christian_n be_v this_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_v and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n from_o their_o common_a write_n the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n contain_v these_o great_a body_n 1._o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la 2._o all_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o general_a council_n if_o not_o also_o the_o provincial_n and_o pope_n decretal_n that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la 3._o all_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o they_o have_v yet_o to_o bring_v forth_o as_o need_n require_v and_o do_v you_o not_o approve_v his_o modesty_n that_o say_v if_o any_o such_o be_v find_v that_o believe_v all_o this_o 2._o the_o second_o sort_n of_o their_o church-member_n be_v all_z who_o believe_v explicit_o all_o article_n and_o whatever_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o respective_a office_n ans._n but_o he_o tell_v you_o not_o a_o word_n what_o article_n these_o be_v nor_o what_o belong_v to_o their_o office_n whether_o it_o be_v all_o the_o article_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n or_o also_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n or_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v about_o their_o office_n and_o be_v here_o any_o notice_n how_o to_o know_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n any_o more_o than_o in_o the_o former_a he_o that_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o shall_v believe_v be_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v there_o any_o such_o and_o what_o be_v that_o all_o and_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v they_o 3._o his_o three_o sort_n of_o member_n be_v those_o who_o so_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la vel_fw-la praecepti_fw-la extend_v to_o all_o the_o adult_n ans._n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o the_o same_o again_o we_o know_v none_o but_o the_o adult_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o so_o here_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o all_o man_n that_o believe_v all_o thing_n command_v be_v christian_n we_o be_v tell_v this_o before_o but_o it_o be_v with_o if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o who_o know_v by_o this_o what_o your_o all_o be_v when_o we_o find_v man_n that_o do_v all_o command_v and_o sin_v not_o we_o will_v hope_v to_o find_v man_n that_o know_v all_o reveal_v and_o have_v no_o ignorance_n yet_o here_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n 4._o his_o four_o sort_n be_v all_z those_o who_o believe_v in_o that_o manner_n all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la according_a to_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o the_o more_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v we_o be_v not_o yet_o tell_v but_o five_o word_n set_v down_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v here_o yet_o a_o word_n to_o satisfy_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n what_o their_o faith_n be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v or_o what_o make_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o union_n but_o reader_n have_v god_n leave_v we_o so_o much_o in_o the_o dark_a be_v christianity_n any_o thing_n or_o nothing_o if_o something_o have_v it_o not_o a_o essence_n which_o may_v be_v define_v be_v this_o all_o our_o notice_n of_o it_o that_o man_n that_o know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v christian_n or_o such_o as_o believe_v five_o article_n &_o cetera_fw-la judge_v now_o whether_o their_o church_n be_v not_o invisible_a and_o if_o any_o little_a part_n of_o it_o be_v visible_a what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o rest_n or_o to_o that_o visibility_n of_o particular_a member_n he_o tell_v we_o these_o be_v almost_o all_o christian_n and_o yet_o question_v whether_o any_o of_o the_o first_o be_v find_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v find_v than_o they_o 5._o and_o his_o five_o sort_n he_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v uncertain_a which_o yet_o it_o be_v doubt_v be_v no_o small_a part_n that_o go_v for_o papist_n and_o note_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n which_o they_o use_v to_o approach_v to_o for_o necessary_a resolution_n and_o the_o recentior_n be_v more_o the_o present_a church_n than_o the_o ancient_n and_o according_a to_o these_o 1._o their_o church_n be_v confess_o doubtful_a or_o unknown_a as_o to_o most_o or_o multitude_n of_o member_n 2._o and_o note_n that_o their_o article_n be_v but_o two_o that_o god_n be_v and_o that_o he_o reward_v work_n all_o the_o common_a heathen_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o mahometan_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n faith_n and_o church_n according_a to_o this_o opinion_n 3._o but_o mark_v reader_n another_o desperate_a corruption_n that_o baptism_n must_v concur_v with_o these_o two_o article_n o_o horrid_a corruption_n of_o christianity_n itself_o be_v this_o antiquity_n and_o tradition_n do_v the_o christian_a church_n use_v to_o baptize_v man_n that_o believe_v neither_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n do_v you_o baptize_v such_o in_o your_o church_n i_o suppose_v even_o pope_n stephen_n himself_o will_v have_v be_v for_o the_o re-baptining_a of_o such_o reader_n if_o one_o of_o we_o have_v charge_v such_o doctrine_n on_o the_o papist_n as_o this_o their_o champion_n do_v shall_v we_o not_o have_v be_v think_v to_o slander_v they_o viz._n that_o their_o late_a doctor_n hold_v that_o all_o that_o believe_v explicit_o but_o a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n and_o be_v baptize_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o that_o believe_v but_o this_o much_o shall_v be_v baptize_v that_o be_v all_o the_o mahometan_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o heathen_n in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o creed_n come_v to_o this_o but_o i_o confess_v if_o the_o world_n be_v persuade_v of_o this_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v his_o use_n of_o it_o for_o when_o he_o be_v once_o take_v for_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n if_o he_o can_v but_o prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o what_o need_v they_o now_o their_o feign_a embassy_n and_o submission_n to_o prove_v the_o abassine_n armenian_n and_o greek_n to_o be_v of_o their_o church_n when_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n be_v prove_v of_o it_o and_o yet_o be_v protestant_n no_n part_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o live_a body_n may_v be_v define_v by_o head_n shoulder_n arm_n though_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n among_o philosopher_n whether_o hair_n humour_n etc._n etc._n be_v animate_v or_o part_n ans._n but_o 1._o it_o be_v know_v then_o that_o there_o be_v visible_o head_n and_o shoulder_n etc._n etc._n but_o you_o tell_v we_o not_o how_o to_o know_v any_o individual_a person_n to_o be_v visible_a member_n of_o your_o church_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o man_n that_o hold_v all_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v make_v none_o visible_a while_o we_o be_v not_o tell_v either_o what_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v or_o by_o what_o profession_n or_o proof_n it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v so_o when_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o sincere_a justify_v faith_n and_o love_n do_v prove_v true_a christian_n and_o that_o such_o there_o be_v it_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o prove_v but_o a_o church_n as_o invisible_a or_o unknown_a to_o we_o because_o we_o know_v not_o who_o have_v this_o sincerity_n so_o be_v it_o when_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v man_n that_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o till_o it_o be_v know_v what_o that_o be_v no_o profession_n can_v thereby_o prove_v they_o christian_n 2._o but_o what_o if_o you_o have_v tell_v we_o how_o to_o know_v those_o man_n that_o be_v certain_a or_o eminent_a member_n of_o your_o church_n be_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o to_o leave_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o almost_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o not_o how_o know_v you_o who_o to_o admit_v to_o your_o sacramental_a communion_n or_o to_o use_v as_o a_o christian_a when_o a_o congregation_n of_o many_o thousand_o person_n call_v papist_n meet_v you_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o of_o these_o be_v of_o your_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o give_v they_o the_o eucharist_n and_o it_o seem_v by_o you_o that_o they_o must_v be_v baptise_a though_o you_o know_v not_o after_o whether_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n remember_v reader_n that_o our_o question_n be_v not_o what_o mercy_n god_n show_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o whether_o any_o out_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o whether_o papist_n make_v it_o not_o uncertain_a and_o whether_o he_o
what_o be_v the_o notorious_a tradition_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n i_o that_o search_v after_o it_o in_o all_o the_o book_n that_o i_o can_v get_v can_v scarce_o give_v a_o good_a account_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o much_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n nay_o no_o universal_a tradition_n at_o all_o be_v notorious_a to_o most_o christian_n much_o less_o to_o all_o the_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n on_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o most_o in_o england_n what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o abassian_o syrian_n armenian_n greek_n no_o nor_o of_o the_o italian_n french_a spaniard_n german_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v notorious_a to_o scholar_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o to_o antiquary_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o other_o scholar_n here_o w._n i._o answer_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o to_o know_v some_o law_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v of_o importance_n 10._o to_o salvation_n 2._o that_o god_n shall_v have_v make_v a_o visible_a government_n imprudent_o who_o governor_n can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o by_o revelation_n r._n b._n 1._o and_o how_o come_v import_v to_o be_v put_v instead_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n this_o be_v but_o fraud_n 2._o it_o be_v worth_a our_o diligent_a enquiry_n can_v we_o prevail_v with_o these_o man_n to_o open_v to_o we_o this_o mystery_n how_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n without_o revelation_n i_o will_v abate_v my_o antagonist_n the_o answer_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o will_v but_o be_v entreat_v to_o answer_v i_o this_o one_o question_n it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v by_o no_o promise_n of_o christ_n no_o word_n of_o god_n no_o nor_o by_o any_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o miracle_n that_o we_o must_v know_v they_o to_o be_v our_o governor_n i_o confess_v i_o can_v know_v without_o revelation_n that_o they_o claim_v such_o authority_n as_o any_o traitor_n or_o usurper_n may_v do_v but_o that_o they_o have_v such_o authority_n it_o be_v pass_v my_o reach_n to_o conjecture_v which_o way_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v without_o revelation_n ☞_o but_o i_o entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o remember_v this_o in_o all_o our_o further_a dispute_n with_o they_o that_o they_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o revelation_n by_o scripture_n spirit_n miracle_n or_o tradition_n make_v know_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v know_v this_o before_o we_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n or_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o must_v know_v it_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o another_o difficulty_n here_o seem_v insuperable_a viz._n see_v this_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o revelation_n it_o can_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o if_o so_o how_o be_v all_o other_o faith_n resolve_v into_o it_o ☞_o and_o how_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o which_o be_v no_o belief_n call_v our_o implicit_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v no_o man_n be_v save_v that_o can_v unriddle_v all_o these_o contradiction_n next_o i_o further_o note_v r._n b._n that_o if_o he_o lie_v the_o sufficiency_n on_o the_o respect_n to_o all_o man_n various_a capacity_n of_o receive_v 11._o the_o notice_n than_o they_o can_v never_o know_v who_o be_v heretic_n but_o if_o they_o lay_v it_o on_o a_o general_a publication_n than_o all_o or_o almost_o all_o man_n be_v heretic_n be_v unavoidable_o ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n so_o publish_v to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o he_o judge_v of_o no_o man_n conscience_n ans._n but_o do_v not_o they_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o burn_v they_o and_o depose_v prince_n for_o not_o exterminate_v they_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a 1._o that_o such_o as_o acknowledge_v themselves_o they_o know_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o i_o infallible_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o reject_v they_o as_o error_n give_v i_o ground_n to_o presume_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n ans._n 1._o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o be_v infallible_a but_o you_o also_o be_v infallible_a in_o believe_v his_o church_n but_o alas_o how_o many_o be_v deceive_v and_o deceiver_n that_o call_v themselves_o infallible_a 2._o but_o if_o your_o belief_n in_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a must_v all_o other_o be_v heretic_n and_o be_v burn_v that_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o your_o degree_n of_o knowledge_n or_o self-conceitedness_n 3._o just_o now_o you_o say_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n need_v no_o revelation_n to_o make_v they_o know_v and_o now_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o your_o belief_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n so_o slippery_a be_v your_o foundation_n 4._o but_o what_o mean_v that_o hard_a word_n the_o true_a church_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v a_o true_a church_n either_o you_o mean_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o a_o particular_a church_n if_o the_o former_a why_o speak_v you_o so_o sneak_o and_o do_v not_o speak_v out_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o christ_n have_v on_o earth_n which_o assertion_n we_o abhor_v and_o despair_v of_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o if_o the_o latter_a what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o whether_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n any_o more_o than_o whether_o ephesus_n thessalonica_n or_o such_o other_o be_v so_o 5._o but_o to_o leave_v your_o parenthesis_n what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v themselves_o that_o they_o know_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o five_o hundred_o among_o we_o that_o ever_o read_v your_o council_n nor_o know_v one_o of_o many_o thing_n propound_v by_o you_o to_o be_v such_o and_o be_v all_o these_o now_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n how_o long_o will_v that_o be_v their_o security_n if_o the_o burn_a and_o exterminate_v religion_n shall_v prevail_v and_o be_v it_o my_o hard_a fate_n to_o become_v a_o heretic_n more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o neighbour_n because_o i_o have_v read_v your_o council_n when_o they_o have_v not_o then_o i_o will_v counsel_v all_o that_o love_v not_o to_o be_v burn_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o meddle_v with_o such_o council_n i_o have_v oft_o read_v how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n you_o judge_v it_o for_o unlicensed_a man_n to_o read_v god_n word_n and_o of_o many_o that_o have_v be_v burn_v for_o it_o and_o its_o consequent_n and_o how_o you_o account_v it_o the_o way_n to_o heresy_n but_o i_o have_v not_o oft_o before_o read_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o read_v your_o decree_n or_o to_o know_v all_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propound_v for_o he_o that_o know_v they_o all_o must_v have_v a_o very_a ready_a commandable_a faith_n such_o as_o can_v believe_v in_o despite_n of_o sense_n reason_n scripture_n and_o tradition_n to_o escape_v the_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v you_o not_o inexorable_a executioner_n when_o it_o come_v next_o to_o the_o burn_a of_o dissenter_n that_o you_o will_v spare_v all_o that_o confess_v not_o that_o they_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v by_o your_o church_n yea_o though_o they_o take_v not_o their_o parish-priest_n that_o tell_v it_o they_o to_o be_v infallible_a especial_o if_o they_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o common_a liar_n or_o one_o that_o hold_v that_o lie_a for_o man_n good_a be_v a_o venial_a sin_n or_o none_o w._n i._n 2._o such_o as_o oppose_v what_o all_o visible_a church_n have_v most_o notorious_o practise_v and_o believe_v as_o divine_a truth_n while_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o teach_v and_o practise_v i_o may_v safe_o presume_v to_o be_v heretic_n 12._o r._n b._n 1._o no_o o●…dipus_n can_v tell_v whether_o while_n here_o refer_v to_o believe_v or_o to_o oppose_v if_o to_o the_o latter_a than_o neither_o abassine_n armenian_n greek_n or_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n for_o they_o oppose_v not_o such_o point_n while_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o teach_v and_o practise_v whatever_o their_o forefather_n do_v for_o they_o have_v themselves_o so_o many_o partner_n as_o derogate_v from_o the_o pretend_a universality_n of_o the_o adversary_n but_o if_o by_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n you_o mean_v all_o except_o themselves_o or_o if_o the_o word_n while_n relate_v to_o believe_v than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v characterise_v by_o you_o for_o certain_a heretic_n for_o i_o defy_v impudence_n itself_o in_o challenge_v it_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o universal_a
sincerity_n but_o the_o very_o be_v of_o they_o be_v the_o papist_n confutation_n of_o we_o §_o 18._o second_o i_o prove_v it_o from_o our_o knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o acts._n when_o i_o know_v and_o feelmy_a love_n shall_v i_o believe_v a_o pope_n that_o never_o see_v i_o that_o tell_v i_o i_o do_v not_o know_v or_o feel_v it_o to_o this_o his_o easy_a answer_n serve_v he_o say_v i_o do_v not_o feel_v that_o i_o true_o love_v god_n or_o his_o servant_n if_o i_o be_v a_o formal_n protestant_n my_o heart_n deceive_v i_o answ._n no_o wonder_v if_o all_o these_o priest_n be_v infallible_a that_o know_v all_o our_o heart_n so_o much_o better_a than_o we_o but_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n the_o true_a searcher_n of_o heart_n if_o the_o fruit_n must_v be_v the_o evidence_n i_o shall_v rather_o fear_v that_o such_o murderer_n of_o hundred_o thousand_o as_o kill_v the_o waldenses_n albigenses_n french_a english_a dutch_a etc._n etc._n be_v like_a to_o be_v without_o love_n than_o all_o those_o meek_a and_o godly_a protestant_n that_o i_o have_v know_v for_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n but_o forma_fw-la be_v sometime_o take_v for_o figura_fw-la and_o for_o outward_a appearance_n only_o and_o such_o formal_a protestant_n as_o have_v but_o the_o clothing_n of_o christianity_n have_v not_o indeed_o the_o love_n of_o god_n §_o 19_o he_o add_v what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o a_o arrian_n a_o turk_n or_o jew_n that_o will_v urge_v the_o like_a knowledge_n or_o feel_n answ._n the_o same_o that_o i_o will_v do_v to_o a_o bloody_a papist_n and'i_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o a_o bediam_fw-la think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o fool_n that_o he_o be_v wise_a or_o a_o beggar_n that_o he_o be_v a_o lord_n or_o a_o illiterate_a man_n that_o he_o be_v learned_a it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o lord_n or_o wise_a or_o learned_a i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o effect_n without_o the_o adequate_a cause_n nor_o be_v there_o a_o cause_n where_o there_o be_v no_o effect_n and_o lie_v that_o perceive_v not_o god_n amiableness_n in_o the_o necessary_a demonstration_n of_o it_o can_v love_v that_o goodness_n he_o perceive_v not_o nor_o can_v any_o desire_n or_o seek_v the_o heaven_n which_o he_o believe_v not_o and_o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o a_o redeemer_n or_o a_o sanctifier_n can_v love_v he_o nor_o can_v he_o love_v believer_n and_o godly_a man_n as_o such_o who_o know_v not_o that_o they_o as_o such_o be_v lovely_a and_o that_o if_o real_o he_o love_v god_n and_o holiness_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n before_o this_o world_n it_o will_v work_v in_o his_o seek_v they_o above_o the_o world_n if_o you_o have_v argue_v rational_o against_o our_o love_n of_o god_n and_o holiness_n from_o any_o prove_a defect_n in_o the_o necessary_a cause_n which_o be_v in_o you_o we_o have_v be_v oblige_v thankful_o to_o hear_v and_o try_v your_o word_n but_o let_v reason_n judge_v e._n g._n whether_o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o love_v this_o world_n best_o and_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v it_o who_o look_v to_o go_v at_o death_n into_o the_o flame_n of_o purgatory_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o go_v to_o the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o his_o redeemer_n and_o whether_o he_o be_v like_a to_o love_n god_n best_a that_o look_v eth_z to_o be_v torment_v by_o he_o in_o those_o flame_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o pass_v into_o heavenly_a perfect_a love_n christ_n tell_v we_o that_o forgive_a much_o cause_v love_n if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o torment_v you_o so_o long_o will_v it_o make_v you_o love_v he_o or_o at_o least_o be_v it_o a_o good_a proof_n that_o protestant_n love_v not_o god_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o will_v torment_v they_o in_o flame_n but_o present_o comfort_v they_o §_o 20._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n be_v this_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v it_o of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a etc._n etc._n here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o the_o predicate_v of_o the_o minor_a be_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o conclussion_n and_o then_o he_o distinguish_v of_o the_o mayor_n of_o contain_v involute_o in_o general_a principle_n he_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o express_o he_o deny_v it_o answ._n 1._o the_o marvellous_a logician_n it_o seem_v be_v but_o for_o one_o mood_n or_o figure_n but_o by_o what_o authority_n or_o reason_n 2._o he_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la before_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n plain_a word_n and_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o further_a prove_v it_o mark_v again_o the_o papist_n value_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o that_o explicit_o believe_v all_o that_o it_o express_o deliver_v and_o no_o more_o say_v these_o man_n can_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o if_o they_o believe_v none_o of_o it_o but_o a_o reward_v deity_n say_v most_o or_o some_o more_o of_o the_o creed_n say_v other_o man_n may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v god_n word_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n or_o council_n say_v be_v such_o next_o he_o distinguish_v of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v by_o all_o distinct_o know_v and_o express_o believe_v and_o so_o he_o grant_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n very_o good_a now_o all_o that_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o a_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o express_a belief_n be_v there_o but_o of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o and_o distinct_o know_v he_o deny_v it_o these_o distinction_n suppose_v say_v he_o i_o deny_v your_o consequence_n answ._n here_o be_v all_o new_a still_o 1._o he_o call_v my_o conclusion_n my_o consequence_n and_o recite_v it_o 2._o what_o he_o mean_v by_o thing_n to_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o believe_v but_o implicit_o be_v pass_v my_o understanding_n have_v to_o do_v with_o that_o man_n that_o have_v all_o this_o while_n describe_v implicit_a belief_n by_o the_o express_a belief_n of_o some_o mere_a general_n truth_n and_o must_v man_n know_v all_o that_o distinct_o which_o they_o believe_v not_o distinct_o but_o in_o their_o general_n the_o man_n sure_o be_v confound_v or_o confound_v i_o the_o general_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n authority_n in_o propound_v and_o expound_v god_n word_n this_o be_v their_o save_a faith_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o they_o propose_v be_v implicit_o contain_v in_o this_o but_o must_v all_o this_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o not_o distinct_o believe_v the_o first_o will_v damn_v all_o that_o know_v not_o every_o one_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n de_fw-la fide_fw-la the_o ad_fw-la will_v show_v that_o they_o believe_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o he_o that_o know_v distinct_o what_o the_o pope_n say_v and_o yet_o believe_v it_o not_o distinct_o can_v believe_v the_o general_a of_o his_o veracity_n but_o perhaps_o he_o speak_v distributive_o of_o two_o sort_n of_o faith_n viz._n both_o the_o implicit_a and_o the_o explicite_fw-la legeris_fw-la and_o so_o mean_v to_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n only_o to_o the_o first_o if_o so_o i_o show_v the_o flat_a contradiction_n of_o it_o before_o where_o there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v express_o eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o because_o to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o with_o this_o man_n be_v but_o to_o be_v the_o unknown_a consequent_a or_o enclose_v of_o that_o which_o be_v believe_v express_o §_o 21._o for_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o major_n the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o to_o all_o thing_n common_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n after_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n i_o have_v cite_v the_o plain_a word_n at_o large_a of_o 1._o ragus_n in_o council_n basil._n bin._n p._n 299._o 2._o gerson_n de_fw-fr exam_fw-la doct_v p._n 2._o cont_n 2._o 3._o durandus_fw-la in_o praefat._n &_o hierom._n in_o he_o 4._o aquinas_n 22._o 9_o 1._o à_fw-fr 10._o ad_fw-la 1._o &_o de_fw-fr verit._n disp_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la q._n
which_o they_o may_v short_o expect_v by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o some_o i_o have_v attempt_v to_o make_v this_o return_n to_o this_o one_o reply_n which_o be_v all_o that_o ever_o they_o publish_v against_o i_o that_o i_o know_v of_o and_o because_o true_a order_n require_v first_o that_o we_o understand_v each_o other_o term_n i_o must_v begin_v with_o that_o though_o it_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n in_o his_o book_n in_o which_o you_o will_v see_v what_o a_o sandy_a fabric_n it_o be_v which_o be_v adorn_v by_o they_o with_o the_o great_a epithet_n of_o apostolical_a ancient_a universal_a infallible_a and_o how_o little_a they_o know_v or_o can_v make_v other_o know_v what_o it_o be_v of_o which_o they_o do_v dispute_v or_o what_o that_o church_n be_v to_o which_o so_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o christian_n call_v by_o they_o heretic_n have_v be_v sacrifice_v by_o sword_n and_o flame_n in_o the_o second_o part_n i_o defend_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n of_o against_o his_o vain_a objection_n and_o in_o the_o three_o part_n i_o defend_v those_o additional_a argument_n by_o which_o i_o prove_v it_o in_o all_o which_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o impartial_a understand_a reader_n may_v see_v that_o their_o terrestrial_a universal_a monarchy_n and_o their_o condemnation_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v contrary_a to_o sense_n reason_n tradition_n consent_n antiquity_n and_o scripture_n and_o that_o their_o kingdom_n stand_v but_o on_o three_o leg_n ignorance_n and_o deceit_n worldly_a interest_n and_o the_o sword_n and_o violence_n and_o when_o these_o and_o especial_o the_o sword_n of_o prince_n do_v cease_v to_o uphold_v it_o it_o will_v present_o die_v and_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o though_o melchior_n canus_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a privilege_n as_o he_o call_v they_o have_v stand_v though_o the_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n have_v be_v against_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o uphold_v against_o all_o these_o by_o no_o better_a mean_n than_o those_o aforesaid_a the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o bishop_n viz._n of_o east_n and_o south_n be_v against_o they_o and_o all_o the_o other_o four_o patriarchates_n renounce_v they_o as_o they_o do_v to_o this_o day_n they_o lay_v the_o fast_a hold_n of_o the_o west_n and_o by_o master_v italy_n flatter_v and_o advance_v france_n promise_v kingdom_n and_o empire_n to_o their_o adherent_n threaten_v the_o deposition_n of_o other_o divide_v germany_n and_o all_o europe_n that_o many_o may_v need_v the_o pope_n and_o few_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v he_o and_o by_o keep_v man_n ignorant_a that_o they_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o their_o government_n by_o these_o mean_v they_o overcome_v the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o make_v they_o their_o subject_n who_o subject_n they_o have_v be_v if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o satisfy_v the_o reader_n against_o popery_n but_o these_o follow_a particular_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o humane_a nature_n to_o receive_v it_o 1._o the_o natural_a incapacity_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v a_o church-monarch_n ☞_o any_o more_o than_o to_o be_v a_o civil_a monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 2._o that_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n succee_v not_o peter_n as_o a_o apostle_n but_o as_o a_o universal_a pastor_n but_o peter_n never_o have_v any_o high_a office_n than_o to_o be_v the_o first_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apoctles_o not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n 3._o that_o they_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o fide_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n be_v peter_n successor_n 4._o that_o none_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v successor_n as_o in_o superior_a seat_n nor_o do_v any_o patriarch_n much_o less_o twelve_o claim_v power_n as_o successor_n of_o any_o apostle_n save_v antioch_n and_o rome_n and_o antioch_n as_o from_o the_o same_o st._n peter_n but_o no_o universal_a sovereignty_n 5._o that_o whoever_o will_v turn_v papist_n must_v confess_v that_o he_o be_v a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n before_o and_o that_o all_o profess_a christian_n be_v so_o save_o the_o papist_n that_o know_v their_o doctrine_n 6._o that_o he_o must_v renounce_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n and_o believe_v they_o all_o deceive_v by_o miracle_n the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o part._n chap._n 1._o sect._n 1_o his_o explication_n of_o the_o term_n catholic_n church_n 1._o he_o exclude_v all_o from_o christ_n universal_a church_n and_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o member_n of_o christian_a congregation_n yet_o mean_v not_o only_a church_n but_o family_n ship_n or_o any_o civil_a assembly_n damn_v all_o solitary_a christian_n or_o that_o be_v alone_o among_o infidel_n 2._o he_o make_v subjection_n to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n necessary_a and_o yet_o say_v the_o votum_fw-la of_o it_o alone_o will_v serve_v sect._n 2._o he_o unchurch_v parish-church_n he_o make_v dependence_n on_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o general_a necessary_a but_o not_o on_o the_o pope_n particular_o sect._n 3_o what_o faith_n must_v be_v in_o a_o church-member_n his_o implicit_a discourse_n of_o implicit_a faith_n which_o indeed_o be_v no_o faith_n of_o any_o particular_a article_n several_a sense_n of_o implicit_a faith_n open_v his_o general_a faith_n prove_v no_o particular_a faith_n in_o what_o sense_n we_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v sect._n 8._o his_o instance_n explain_v sect._n 9_o when_o virtual_a repentance_n suffice_v sect._n 10._o his_o avoid_v to_o answer_v sect._n 11._o the_o papist_n church_n invisible_a sect._n 12._o his_o strange_a doctrine_n of_o general_n sect._n 13._o what_o christianity_n be_v be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o sect._n 14._o the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o church_n further_o prove_v sect._n 15._o their_o contradiction_n about_o receive_v all_o faith_n on_o the_o church_n authority_n sect._n 16._o 17._o the_o true_a method_n of_o believe_v sect._n 18._o humane_a faith_n be_v join_v with_o divine_a sect._n 20._o what_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v sect._n 21._o papist_n utter_o disagree_v what_o a_o christian_a be_v and_o confound_v and_o their_o church_n invisible_a sect._n 22._o note_n of_o great_a moment_n hereupon_o the_o baptise_v of_o man_n that_o believe_v only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n be_v a_o new_a false_a baptism_n sect._n 23._o q_o 3_o who_o be_v the_o pastor_n who_o rejection_n unchurch_v man_n of_o parish_n priest_n q._n 4._o how_o shall_v all_o the_o world_n be_v sure_a that_o pope_n and_o priest_n have_v a_o just_a election_n or_o ordination_n sect._n 24_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o chap._n 2._o their_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n heresy_n whether_o heresy_n be_v in_o will_n or_o understanding_n sect._n 1_o heretic_n by_o their_o definition_n be_v unknown_a sect._n 2._o the_o power_n of_o judge_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n make_v we_o the_o clergy_n master_n of_o all_o man_n life_n sect._n 3_o he_o make_v none_o heretic_n that_o deny_v not_o god_n veracity_n sect._n 4._o and_o all_o heretic_n to_o deny_v it_o yea_o all_o that_o receive_v not_o every_o truth_n safficient_o propose_v yet_o unsaith_o all_o and_o say_v that_o not_o culpable_a neglect_n of_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o all_o but_o contradiction_n to_o the_o know_a proposal_n of_o lawful_a superior_n make_v a_o heretic_n sect._n 7._o q._n what_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v sect._n 8._o 9_o he_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church-governor_n may_v be_v know_v without_o revelation_n sect._n 10._o sufficiency_n further_o examine_v sect._n 11._o he_o hereticate_v themselves_o or_o none_o sect._n 12._o whether_o every_o misunderstanding_n of_o a_o intelligible_a text_n of_o scripture_n be_v heresy_n sect._n 13._o what_o heresy_n be_v indeed_o sect._n 14._o chap._n 3._o their_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n pope_n sect._n 1_o pope_n judge_v herteick_n by_o many_o council_n where_o christ_n institution_n of_o the_o papacy_n must_v be_v find_v sect._n 2._o who_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la must_v elect_v the_o pope_n sect._n 3._o w._n j._n can_v and_o dare_v not_o tell_v consecration_n deny_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o pope_n sect._n 6._o neither_o papal_a nor_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n he_o say_v depend_v on_o papal_a or_o episcopal_a ordination_n sect._n 7._o so_o they_o may_v be_v layman_n what_o such_o jurisdiction_n be_v sect._n 8._o what_o notice_n or_o proof_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o subject_n chap._n 4._o their_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n bishop_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o god_n ordain_v in_o their_o way_n sect._n 1._o 2._o their_o bishop_n of_o calcedon_n testimony_n put_v off_o sect._n 3_o they_o make_v all_o man_n that_o will_v or_o no_o man_n to_o be_v bishop_n his_o great_a confusion_n and_o contradiction_n say_v we_o want_v not_o episcopal_a consecration_n but_o election_n
his_o shameful_a reformation_n of_o syllogism_n and_o pretence_n of_o logical_a form_n sect._n 6._o he_o deny_v protestant_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n i_o prove_v it_o his_o silly_a cavil_n at_o the_o form_n of_o the_o argument_n sect._n 7._o protestant_n profess_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n prove_v his_o cavil_n shame_v sect._n 8._o his_o oft_o repeat_v reason_n confute_v of_o not_o receive_v the_o church_n exposition_n sect._n 9_o the_o novelty_n and_o discord_n of_o popery_n the_o confusion_n in_o council_n sect._n 10._o my_o second_o argument's_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o essential_o the_o popish_a faith_n explain_v sect._n 12._o my_o three_o argument_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v with_o they_o too_o little_a and_o yet_o a_o insufficient_a proposal_n make_v christianity_n itself_o unnecessary_a sect._n 12._o he_o give_v up_o his_o cause_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a belief_n sect._n 13._o my_o four_o argument_n his_o ridiculous_a deny_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n sect._n 14._o the_o minor_a prove_v all_o protestant_n as_o such_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n ergo_fw-la sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n he_o what_o miracle_n believe_v in_o the_o pope_n do_v sect._n 15._o he_o have_v no_o way_n to_o deny_v that_o protestant_n profess_v true_a faith_n but_o by_o his_o impudent_a deny_v 1._o that_o we_o profess_v to_o love_v god_n 2._o and_o that_o we_o feel_v that_o we_o do_v love_v he_o sect._n 20._o my_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n confound_v he_o sect._n 21._o scripture_n sufficiency_n sect._n 22._o my_o three_o argument_n and_o his_o shameful_a answer_n sect._n 25._o my_o four_o argument_n prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o our_o church_n not_o only_o as_o christian_a but_o as_o without_o popery_n ten_o sub-argument_n for_o that_o 1_o from_o the_o twenty-eighth_a canon_n of_o conc._n calce_v 2._o from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n against_o heretic_n sect._n 28._o 3._o from_o tradition_n prove_v 4._o from_o church_n never_o subject_a to_o rome_n his_o citation_n brief_o confute_v s●…ct_n 30._o 5._o from_o the_o non-subjection_n even_o of_o the_o imperial_a church_n sect._n 32._o 6._o from_o gregory_n the_o first_o be_v testimony_n sect._n 33._o 7._o from_o their_o confession_n aen._n silvius_n reynerius_n canus_n binnius_n vindicate_v sect._n 38._o 8._o phocas_n give_v the_o primacy_n to_o boniface_n sect._n 39_o 9_o their_o liturgy_n new_a sect._n 40._o twelve_o instance_n of_o new_a article_n of_o the_o papist_n faith_n which_o he_o dare_v not_o answer_n s●…ct_n 42._o the_o ten_o argument_n he_o yield_v the_o cause_n in_o sense_n s●…ct_n 43._o notable_a testimony_n unanswered_a s●…ct_n 44._o papist_n differ_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la sect._n 47._o what_o heretic_n be_v or_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n full_o open_v his_o shameful_a exclaim_n against_o i_o for_o distinguish_v sect._n 48._o fifty_o six_o of_o philastrius_n heresy_n name_v many_o be_v small_a matter_n and_o many_o notorious_a certain_a truth_n sect._n 49._o the_o woeful_a work_n of_o hereticate_a council_n sect._n 50._o council_n hereticated_a pope_n and_o one_o another_o almost_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n hereticate_v one_o another_o sect._n 55._o his_o reason_n answer_v for_o unchurch_v all_o heretic_n sect._n 60._o their_o doctrine_n of_o sufficient_a proposal_n fullier_n confute_v and_o their_o hereticate_a and_o unchurch_v themselves_o evince_v mr._n johnson_n alias_o terret_n explication_n of_o seven_o term_n of_o our_o question_n examine_v and_o his_o confusion_n manifest_v chap._n i._n question_v 1_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n 1_o w._n j._n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v all_o those_o visible_a assembly_n congregation_n or_o community_n of_o christian_n who_o live_v in_o unity_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o external_a communion_n with_o one_o another_o and_o in_o dependence_n of_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n r._n b._n qu._n 1._o whether_o you_o exclude_v not_o all_o those_o convert_v among_o infidel_n that_o never_o have_v external_a communion_n nor_o be_v member_n of_o any_o particular_a visible_a church_n of_o which_o you_o make_v the_o catholic_n to_o to_o be_v constitute_v w._n j._n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o such_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n in_o voto_fw-la or_o quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la resolve_v to_o be_v of_o that_o particular_a church_n actual_o which_o shall_v or_o may_v be_v design_v for_o they_o by_o that_o pastor_n to_o be_v include_v in_o my_o definition_n r._n b._n you_o see_v then_o that_o your_o definition_n signify_v nothing_o no_o man_n know_v your_o meaning_n by_o they_o w._n j._n you_o shall_v present_o see_v that_o your_o exception_n signify_v less_o than_o nothing_o r._n b._n 1._o you_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o consist_v only_o of_o visible_a assembly_n and_o after_o you_o allow_v such_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v no_o visible_a assembly_n w._n j._n i_o make_v those_o convert_a infidel_n visible_a assembly_n as_o my_o definition_n speak_v though_o not_o actual_a member_n of_o any_o particular_a visible_a church_n for_o though_o every_o particular_a visible_a church_n be_v a_o assembly_n of_o christian_n yet_o every_o assembly_n of_o christian_n be_v not_o a_o particular_a visible_a church_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o allow_v such_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v no_o visible_a assembly_n as_o you_o misconceive_v r._n b._n 1._o will_v any_o man_n have_v understand_v that_o by_o visible_a assembly_n the_o man_n have_v not_o mean_v only_o churches_n but_o also_o family_n school_n city_n &_o c_o 2._o do_v he_o not_o here_o express_o deny_v all_o those_o person_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o member_n of_o some_o other_o visible_a assembly_n and_o if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o pilgrim_n a_o hermit_n or_o if_o one_o or_o many_o be_v cast_v upon_o a_o uninhabited_a coast_n and_o if_o any_o be_v member_n of_o no_o visible_a assembly_n as_o merchant_n ambassador_n to_o infidel_n etc._n etc._n when_o will_v he_o prove_v that_o this_o unchristen_v or_o unchurch_v they_o r._n b._n 2._o you_o now_o mention_v subjection_n to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n as_o sufficient_a which_o in_o your_o description_n or_o definition_n you_o do_v not_o w._n j._n be_o i_o oblige_v to_o mention_v all_o thing_n in_o my_o definition_n which_o i_o express_v after_o in_o answer_v your_o exception_n ans._n all_o that_o belong_v to_o a_o notify_a definition_n r._n b._n 3._o if_o to_o be_v only_o in_o voto_fw-la resolve_v to_o be_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n will_v serve_v then_o inexistence_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v only_o in_o voto_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_n church_n prove_v no_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o because_o it_o be_v terminus_fw-la diminuens_fw-la but_o the_o contrary_n see_v then_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n inexistence_n in_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o inexistence_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n why_o do_v you_o not_o only_o mention_v it_o in_o your_o definition_n but_o confine_v the_o church_n to_o it_o w._n j._n i_o make_v they_o actual_o inexistent_a in_o some_o visible_a assembly_n according_a to_o my_o definition_n and_o in_o voto_fw-la only_o in_o a_o particular_a church_n now_o every_o particular_a family_n or_o neighbourhood_n nay_o two_o or_o three_o gather_v in_o prayer_n be_v a_o actual_a assembly_n r._n b._n strange_a doctrine_n so_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o our_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n that_o we_o be_v member_n of_o a_o christian_a city_n or_o village_n or_o fair_a or_o market_n or_o some_o meeting_n and_o so_o all_o christian_n that_o live_v solitary_o in_o wilderness_n or_o among_o turk_n or_o heathen_n be_v all_o unchristened_a and_o damn_a w._n j._n st._n hierome_n say_v ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la plebs_fw-la unita_fw-la episcopo_fw-la in_o this_o consist_v your_o fallacy_n that_o you_o esteem_v none_o to_o be_v actual_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unless_o they_o be_v actual_a member_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n which_o i_o deny_v r._n b._n i_o think_v very_o it_o have_v be_v i_o that_o be_v deny_v it_o all_o this_o while_n this_o be_v dispu●…ing_v in_o the_o dark_a will_v you_o say_v that_o you_o mean_v in_o voto_fw-la who_o can_v understand_v you_o then_o when_o you_o say_v they_o must_v be_v of_o visible_a assembly_n and_o mean_v that_o they_o need_v not_o be_v of_o any_o but_o wish_v they_o be_v or_o purpose_n to_o be_v so_o w._n j._n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o they_o be_v actual_o of_o some_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n of_o christian_n though_o it_o be_v no_o particular_a church_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o be_v a_o new_a exposition_n of_o solomon_n vae_fw-la soli_fw-la woe_n to_o he_o that_o be_v alone_o for_o he_o be_v unchristened_a by_o it_o or_o
we_o may_v not_o know_v what_o and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o they_o have_v a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o some_o article_n they_o can_v never_o be_v think_v to_o be_v without_o faith_n 5._o answ._n either_o he_o mean_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o the_o question_n which_o must_v notify_v we_o from_o heretic_n and_o from_o other_o without_o and_o which_o the_o church_n must_v unite_v in_o or_o some_o other_o faith_n if_o any_o other_o do_v he_o not_o wilful_o juggle_v and_o fly_v from_o answer_v when_o he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v if_o he_o mean_v the_o faith_n in_o question_n than_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n be_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o member_n of_o their_o church_n yea_o and_o all_o that_o they_o call_v heretic_n and_o anathematise_v themselves_o yea_o and_o the_o devil_n that_o believe_v and_o tremble_v but_o one_o will_v think_v that_o pag._n 11_o he_o describe_v the_o necessary_a implicit_a faith_n when_o he_o say_v our_o ordinary_a sense_n be_v so_o to_o believe_v that_o point_n that_o we_o have_v no_o distinct_a or_o express_a knowledge_n 6._o of_o it_o but_o only_o a_o confuse_a understanding_n because_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o confuso_fw-la under_o this_o proposition_n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o i_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n answ._n 1._o but_o i_o must_v again_o repeat_v that_o here_o the_o word_n confuse_a be_v use_v but_o to_o confound_v this_o be_v no_o actual_a belief_n of_o any_o particular_a under_o that_o proposition_n when_o a_o thing_n be_v actual_o know_v in_o itself_o but_o only_o by_o a_o general_n knowledge_n or_o not_o d●…stinct_n this_o be_v true_o a_o impersect_n knowledge_n it_o be_v to_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n though_o not_o its_o form_n or_o individuation_n if_o i_o see_v something_o which_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o man_n or_o a_o tree_n a_o steeple_n or_o a_o rock_n i_o very_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n itself_o but_o not_o the_o form_n of_o it_o if_o i_o see_v a_o book_n open_a at_o two-yard_n distance_n i_o see_v the_o letter_n distinct_o but_o not_o formal_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v if_o i_o see_v a_o clod_n of_o earth_n or_o a_o river_n i_o see_v much_o of_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o water_n but_o i_o discern_v not_o the_o sand_n or_o the_o drop_n as_o distinct_a part_n here_o something_o be_v know_v though_o the_o special_a or_o numerical_a difference_n much_o more_o some_o accident_n be_v unknown_a but_o in_o know_v w._n i_n general_a proposition_n only_o i_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_n as_o shall_v yet_o be_v further_o manifest_v 2._o and_o mark_v what_o his_o general_a proposition_n be_v which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o object_n of_o their_o 7._o implicit_a say_v viz._n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n either_o he_o real_o mean_v that_o this_o be_v the_o implicit_a faith_n by_o which_o christian_n be_v notifi●…d_v and_o which_o unit_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o distinguish_v they_o from_o those_o without_o or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o what_o do_v he_o but_o deceive_v his_o r●…ader_n if_o he_o do_v then_o as_o i_o say_v all_o christian_n heretic_n most_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n believe_v the_o first_o proposition_n viz._n that_o all_o be_v true_a that_o god_n reveal_v and_o protestant_n and_o papist_n and_o most_o other_o sort_n of_o christian_n agree_v in_o the_o second_o the_o scripture-truth_n here_o then_o be_v a_o justification_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o far_o but_o do_v you_o think_v that_o he_o mean_v as_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v do_v they_o not_o hold_v it_o also_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v take_v their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o declarer_fw-la of_o this_o scripture-truth_n and_o also_o that_o tradition_n not_o write_v in_o the_o bible_n be_v believe_v must_v not_o both_o these_o make_v up_o their_o implicit_a faith_n if_o our_o general_a faith_n and_o they_o be_v the_o same_o what_o make_v they_o accuse_v we_o herein_o as_o they_o do_v but_o now_o pag._n 11._o he_o proceed_v to_o assault_v i_o with_o such_o reason_n as_o this_o no_o man_n know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o wit_n with_o a_o actual_a understanding_n of_o every_o particular_a 8._o ergo_fw-la say_v i_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v now_o i_o proceed_v if_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v than_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v then_o further_o whoever_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n but_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v ergo_fw-la you_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n see_v you_o not_o how_o fair_a a_o thread_n you_o have_v spin_v or_o will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v a_o good_a christian_a if_o you_o will_v you_o may_v but_o no_o good_a christian_n will_v believe_v you_o answ._n the_o man_n seem_v in_o good_a sadness_n in_o all_o this_o childish_a play_n and_o must_v rome_n be_v thus_o uphold_v and_o must_v poor_a man_n faith_n and_o conscience_n be_v thus_o lay_v upon_o a_o game_n at_o cheat_a word_n no_o wonder_n that_o this_o hector_n will_v have_v nothing_o say_v in_o dispute_n but_o syllogism_n etc._n etc._n few_o lad_n and_o woman_n will_v unmask_v his_o pitiful_a deceit_n whether_o the_o great_a disputer_n see_v their_o vanity_n himself_o i_o know_v not_o but_o man_n at_o age_n that_o can_v speak_v and_o try_v sense_n will_v see_v that_o all_o this_o cant_n be_v but_o the_o sporting-equivocation_n of_o one_o syllable_n all_o this_o all_z be_v either_o a_o term_n of_o a_o mere_a general_a proposition_n e._n g._n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a here_o i_o believe_v what_o be_v predicate_v of_o this_o general_a word_n all_o and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o true_a proposition_n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a or_o it_o signify_v the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n as_o in_o themselves_o know_v and_o so_o if_o the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n general_o express_v by_o the_o word_n all_o be_v not_o themselves_o know_v as_o such_o thing_n species_n or_o part_n it_o be_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o they_o at_o all_o to_o know_v that_o truth_n of_o the_o say_v general_a proposition_n and_o do_v not_o every_o novice_n in_o logic_n know_v this_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o belief_n as_o of_o knowledge_n he_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n who_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o divine_a revelation_n be_v true_a which_o heretic_n and_o heathen_n believe_v but_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o christian_a know_v to_o he_o or_o i_o know_v or_o believe_v all_o the_o particular_a verity_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o he_o believe_v not_o one_o of_o they_o beside_o that_o proposition_n itself_o which_o be_v find_v among_o the_o rest_n who_o believe_v but_o that_o general_a but_o yet_o he_o will_v justify_v his_o vanity_n by_o more_o instance_n pag._n 12_o he_o say_v when_o you_o profess_v in_o 9_o t●…e_a creed_n that_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a i_o demand_v do_v you_o believe_v as_o you_o profess_v if_o you_o do_v than_o you_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o actual_a belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o many_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whereof_o you_o have_v no_o actual_a understanding_n or_o which_o be_v whole_o unknown_a particular_o or_o distinct_o to_o you_o or_o by_o any_o other_o knowledge_n than_o as_o confuse_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n all._n ans._n 1._o what_o be_v all_o this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v this_o proposition_n all_o thing_n of_o which_o many_o be_v unknown_a to_o ●…e_v be_v create_v by_o god_n this_o proposition_n i_o know_v and_o believe_v but_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o such_o i_o no_o further_o believe_v than_o i_o know_v if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o that_o they_o be_v if_o i_o know_v not_o what_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o what_o they_o be_v that_o be_v if_o i_o have_v not_o a_o intellectual_a conception_n that_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o be_v for_o believe_v be_v indeed_o but_o a_o know_v by_o the_o medium_n of_o a_o testimony_n or_o revelation_n and_o the_o veracity_n of_o the_o revealer_n i_o believe_v that_o god_n ma●…_n all_o that_o be_v about_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o i_o neither_o know_v nor_o actual_o believe_v any_o one_o thing_n species_n or_o individual_a or_o
nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o you_o to_o do_v which_o you_o can_v do_v without_o come_v into_o the_o light_n it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o the_o papist_n divine_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v and_o yet_o they_o have_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o controversy_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v that_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v member_n of_o their_o church_n though_o it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o divine_n but_o mark_v that_o this_o be_v not_o then_o with_o they_o de_fw-mi fide_fw-la any_o point_n of_o faith_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o must_v be_v believe_v for_o their_o divine_n dispute_v not_o that_o which_o they_o take_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la i_o tell_v he_o that_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v true_a and_o god_n word_n and_o yet_o not_o know_v a_o word_n that_o be_v in_o it_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n or_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o such_o a_o person_n 15._o he_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v moral_o impossible_a for_o either_o such_o a_o person_n believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o and_o then_o according_a to_o all_o divine_n his_o faith_n can_v be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a or_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v he_o a_o christian_a or_o he_o believe_v it_o prudent_o by_o prudential_a motive_n of_o credibility_n now_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o other_o save_o that_o though_o he_o know_v not_o by_o experience_n that_o christ_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o bible_n he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o he_o be_v profess_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n by_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o deliver_v the_o bible_n to_o he_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n ans._n here_o be_v many_o thing_n worthy_a our_o consideration_n 1._o that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v a_o christian_a unless_o his_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a not_o only_o in_o the_o object_n but_o his_o act_n and_o sure_o no_o man_n know_v what_o other_o man_n act_n of_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o so_o their_o church_n be_v still_o invisible_a 2._o no_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o no_o man_n know_v whether_o another_o believe_v it_o not_o rash_o and_o imprudent_o yea_o whether_o he_o believe_v it_o at_o all_o therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o no_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v serve_v to_o free_v a_o man_n from_o this_o rashness_n imprudence_n and_o nullity_n of_o his_o christianity_n 1._o but_o why_o then_o have_v we_o not_o this_o general_n the_o church_n catholic_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o its_o authority_n before_o in_o the_o description_n of_o implicit_a or_o explicit_a faith_n 2._o be_v that_o man_n no_o christian_a in_o the_o primitive_a time_n who_o be_v convert_v by_o a_o single_a apostle_n and_o take_v not_o the_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v the_o eunuch_n convert_v by_o philip_n act._n 8._o or_o the_o jailor_n and_o lydia_n convert_v by_o paul_n act._n 16._o or_o the_o 3000_o convert_v by_o peter_n act._n 2._o receive_v faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o indian_n when_o convert_v by_o frumentius_n and_o edesus_fw-la or_o the_o abassian_a empire_n that_o till_o late_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretension_n or_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v use_v that_o argument_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o convert_v their_o hearer_n or_o that_o they_o always_o first_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o church_n if_o by_o the_o church_n you_o mean_v any_o single_a apostle_n or_o teacher_n hold_v to_o that_o and_o we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o you_o 3._o but_o authority_n be_v a_o ambiguous_a word_n and_o may_v deceive_v we_o maintain_v that_o a_o preserve_n and_o teach_v ministerial_a authority_n be_v usual_o needful_a to_o man_n conversion_n to_o the_o faith_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v first_o believe_v by_o the_o hearer_n but_o a_o judge_a authority_n viz._n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o scripture_n a_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n or_o not_o which_o determine_v by_o a_o sentence_n rather_o than_o teach_v by_o open_v that_o evidence_n which_o cause_v belief_n in_o the_o teacher_n himself_o this_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o man_n faith_n 4._o and_o what_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v hear_v a_o preacher_n open_v the_o other_o reason_n of_o christianity_n without_o talk_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o shall_v hereupon_o believe_v or_o shall_v believe_v by_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o a_o bible_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o this_o man_n be_v no_o christian_a nor_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o shall_v not_o perish_v and_o say_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o any_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v the_o roman_n believe_v rash_o and_o impudent_o and_o shall_v perish_v 4._o but_o it_o be_v well_o worth_a the_o enquiry_n can_v we_o possible_o find_v it_o out_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o 16._o know_v the_o church_n and_o its_o profession_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o act_n of_o necessary_a faith_n before_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v be_v believe_v or_o what_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o our_o belief_n of_o this_o church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o faith_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v know_v before_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v believe_v and_o that_o in_o know_v the_o church_n we_o must_v know_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n call_v the_o christian_a church_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o this_o company_n of_o man_n be_v that_o church_n must_v all_o these_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v or_o but_o one_o or_o two_o and_o which_o 1._o if_o the_o name_n be_v enough_o a_o man_n may_v know_v that_o a_o company_n of_o man_n be_v call_v christian_n or_o mahumetanes_n who_o know_v not_o at_o all_o what_o christianity_n or_o mahumetanism_n be_v you_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v to_o trust_v in_o christ_n this_o they_o may_v do_v and_o not_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v whether_o god_n or_o man_n or_o what_o he_o have_v do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o we_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o must_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n so_o they_o may_v do_v and_o yet_o not_o know_v what_o the_o word_n saviour_n signify_v or_o what_o christ_n ever_o do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o our_o salvation_n 2._o but_o if_o he_o mean_v here_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v believe_v god_n word_n must_v first_o know_v the_o church_n as_o define_v or_o know_v it_o in_o all_o its_o essence_n then_o 1._o how_o few_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o how_o will_v he_o know_v who_o they_o be_v 2._o and_o still_o the_o question_n recur_v what_o be_v it_o that_o must_v be_v particular_o believe_v to_o essentiate_v the_o church_n for_o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o he_o can_v know_v that_o he_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v 3._o and_o when_o that_o be_v do_v it_o seem_v he_o must_v know_v which_o be_v that_o church_n consider_v in_o existence_n as_o different_a from_o all_o heresy_n and_o other_o society_n but_o by_o this_o method_n our_o difficulty_n be_v multiply_v 1._o how_o shall_v i_o be_v sure_a that_o this_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v i_o in_o say_v that_o this_o and_o not_o that_o be_v god_n word_n be_v this_o by_o a_o act_n of_o knowledge_n or_o of_o divine_a faith_n if_o of_o knowledge_n what_o evidence_n prove_v it_o if_o of_o faith_n than_o i_o must_v believe_v god_n before_o i_o can_v believe_v he_o that_o be_v i_o must_v believe_v that_o this_o be_v his_o revelation_n and_o true_a that_o the_o roman
denominate_v from_o the_o prime_n or_o second_o efficient_a of_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o god_n own_o veracity_n and_o not_o man_n be_v the_o objectum_fw-la formale_a fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la 4._o but_o why_o may_v not_o a_o subordinate_a humane_a faith_n be_v conjoin_v with_o this_o and_o so_o we_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n at_o once_o 1._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n 2._o of_o christ_n as_o man_n 3_o and_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 1._o do_v not_o the_o union_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n with_o the_o humane_a make_v christ_n as_o man_n to_o be_v credible_a if_o so_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v he_o 2._o do_v not_o the_o sanctify_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o divine_a inspiration_n join_v to_o it_o make_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n credible_a person_n if_o so_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v they_o 3._o do_v not_o the_o miracle_n which_o they_o wrought_v render_v the_o person_n and_o their_o testimony_n credible_a together_o with_o the_o circumstance_n of_o their_o be_v eye-witness_n and_o suchlike_a 4._o be_v not_o every_o honest_a man_n credible_a according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o skill_n and_o honesty_n 5._o do_v not_o every_o man_n know_v that_o there_o may_v be_v many_o efficient_a cause_n conjoin_v in_o produce_v one_o effect_n may_v not_o faith_n now_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o preacher_n word_n and_o spirit_n why_o else_o do_v christ_n say_v to_o paul_n act_v 26._o 17_o 18_o i_o send_v thou_o to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o turn_v they_o etc._n etc._n and_o paul_n direct_v timothy_n to_o save_v himself_o and_o those_o that_o hear_v he_o why_o may_v not_o believe_v god_n believe_v christ_n as_o man_n and_o believe_v peter_n and_o john_n etc._n etc._n that_o see_v he_o rise_v be_v conjunct_a cause_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n resurrection_n if_o they_o may_v not_o produce_v one_o faith_n at_o least_o they_o may_v produce_v three_o faith_n unite_v by_o conjunction_n but_o will_v one_o ever_o have_v expect_v this_o from_o a_o jesuit_n or_o roman_a priest_n remember_v reader_n that_o divine_a belief_n and_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n council_n pope_n or_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o conjunct_a cause_n of_o our_o believe_v the_o gospel_n or_o christian_a faith_n in_o this_o man_n opinion_n but_o he_o say_v though_o the_o prophet_n be_v a_o humane_a person_n yet_o he_o speak_v when_o he_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n not_o by_o humane_a but_o divine_a authority_n god_n speak_v by_o his_o mouth_n ans._n it_o be_v veracity_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o and_o be_v the_o authority_n in_o question_n and_o do_v not_o god_n veracity_n give_v veracity_n to_o the_o speaker_n and_o use_v it_o do_v god_n speak_v by_o prophet_n and_o christ_n humanity_n as_o through_o a_o inanimate_a pipe_n or_o whistle_n or_o as_o by_o balaam_n ass_n do_v he_o make_v no_o use_n of_o the_o reason_n and_o honesty_n of_o the_o speaker_n nor_o make_v they_o more_o know_v and_o more_o honest_a true_a and_o careful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o fit_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v this_o roman_a divinity_n why_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n so_o oft_o protest_v that_o they_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o lie_v not_o even_o of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v will_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v equal_o credible_a to_o we_o if_o all_o the_o witness_n have_v in_o other_o matter_n be_v knave_n and_o liar_n 2._o reader_n judge_v whether_o those_o that_o accuse_v the_o roman_a clergy_n of_o fanaticism_n and_o enthusiasm_n do_v they_o any_o wrong_n while_o they_o think_v that_o god_n make_v they_o infallible_a by_o such_o inspiration_n as_o make_v no_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n learning_n or_o honesty_n and_o read_v but_o what_o their_o own_o historian_n say_v of_o fifty_o pope_n together_o beside_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o of_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v lad_n and_o can_v not_o read_v mass_n but_o be_v illiterate_a read_v what_o their_o council_n have_v say_v of_o some_o who_o they_o depose_v as_o inhuman_a monster_n and_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o believe_v that_o any_o inspiration_n use_v those_o man_n as_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o that_o christian_a faith_n and_o see_v here_o why_o it_o be_v that_o they_o think_v wit_n and_o honesty_n no_o more_o necessary_a in_o pope_n or_o council_n if_o god_n use_v they_o but_o as_o a_o organ-pipe_n or_o trumpet_n pag._n 18._o when_o he_o be_v urge_v to_o tell_v i_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o necessary_a belief_n of_o their_o church_n 21._o which_o must_v make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o he_o again_o bid_v i_o tell_v he_o what_o point_v i_o make_v essential_a to_o a_o christian_a and_o i_o shall_v save_v he_o the_o labour_n ans._n and_o be_v we_o indeed_o agree_v and_o yet_o do_v they_o writeso_fw-mi many_o volume_n to_o the_o contrary_a reader_n i_o take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o belief_n and_o consent_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n that_o be_v the_o constitutive_a essence_n of_o a_o christian._n remember_v this_o when_o they_o jest_v at_o fundamental_o and_o tell_v we_o of_o damnation_n if_o we_o believe_v not_o their_o council_n and_o the_o country-priest_n that_o be_v the_o reporter_n of_o they_o remember_v now_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o it_o reach_v to_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n but_o will_v these_o waver_a man_n long_o stand_v to_o this_o and_o confess_v their_o sect_n to_o be_v but_o a_o four_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v that_o word_n not_o understand_v be_v no_o true_a faith_n we_o be_v yet_o to_o seek_v what_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v mean_a and_o comprehend_v answ._n these_o ignorances_n or_o artifices_fw-la have_v too_o long_o abuse_v unstudy_v man_n it_o be_v not_o now_o the_o unsearchable_a truth_n of_o man_n subjective_n faith_n or_o internal_a act_n which_o we_o dispute_v of_o but_o it_o be_v of_o necessary_a objective_n faith_n or_o what_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la objecti_fw-la be_v essential_o necessary_a to_o true_a subjective_n faith_n in_o case_n it_o be_v true_o believe_v which_o god_n only_o can_v tell_v and_o i_o say_v 1._o it_o be_v no_o mere_a word_n speak_v more_o or_o less_o which_o can_v prove_v to_o another_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o speaker_n belief_n of_o they_o 2._o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o baptismal_a profession_n and_o covenant_n if_o sincere_o believe_v contain_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n 3._o and_o for_o more_o or_o few_o word_n i_o say_v that_o the_o more_o understand_v any_o man_n have_v the_o more_o full_o and_o easy_o he_o may_v understand_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n though_o general_a and_o few_o but_o to_o a_o ignorant_a person_n there_o must_v be_v many_o word_n and_o oft_o repeat_v to_o make_v he_o understand_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o other_o do_v by_o these_o few_o and_o must_v we_o therefore_o have_v as_o many_o symbol_n of_o christianity_n as_o there_o be_v various_a degree_n of_o understanding_n 4._o and_o the_o church_n have_v in_o its_o best_a time_n take_v up_o with_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o baptismal_a faith_n and_o if_o it_o now_o contain_v any_o word_n more_o than_o essential_a that_o cross_v not_o its_o use_n which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o just_a and_o satisfactory_a explication_n of_o that_o baptismal_a faith_n which_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o essential_o and_o according_o till_o faith_n and_o piety_n degenerate_v into_o opinion_n and_o tyranny_n baptise_a person_n be_v account_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o as_o oblige_v to_o live_v as_o christ_n disciple_n in_o love_n to_o one_o another_o it_o be_v none_o but_o christ_n himself_o who_o institute_v baptism_n as_o our_o christen_n to_o be_v the_o symbol_n and_o badge_n of_o his_o disciple_n pag._n 19_o when_o i_o have_v press_v he_o to_o a_o particular_a answer_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o will_v follow_v 22._o upon_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o suppose_v he_o may_v make_v he_o tell_v i_o that_o divine_n have_v a_o hundred_o time_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o thing_n must_v be_v believe_v necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la and_o some_o thing_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la ans._n we_o have_v hear_v some_o thing_n some_o thing_n so_o oft_o that_o we_o will_v fain_o know_v what_o thing_n at_o last_o be_v necessary_a ut_fw-la media_fw-la reader_n if_o these_o writer_n must_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o
part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o next_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o jesuit_n turnbull_n against_o rob._n baronius_n maintain_v that_o revelation_n 6._o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o to_o deny_v it_o be_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o formal_a object_n 2._o and_o that_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi nomen_fw-la and_o he_o be_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v none_o formal_o to_o the_o latter_a he_o give_v no_o answer_n and_o to_o the_o first_o as_o bad_a as_o none_o viz._n that_o the_o heretic_n deny_v also_o the_o material_a object_n and_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n and_o that_o which_o he_o be_v oblige_v by_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o virtual_o deny_v god_n to_o be_v true_a ans._n but_o i_o again_o reply_n 1._o virtual_a be_v not_o actual_a 2._o it_o be_v no_o virtual_a denial_n that_o god_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o the_o proposer_n be_v true_a to_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v god_n word_n only_o prove_v that_o i_o break_v that_o obligation_n if_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o not_o at_o all_o that_o i_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v a_o liar_n who_o word_n i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v again_o this_o make_v all_o christian_n to_o be_v heretic_n past_a dispute_n for_o all_o christian_n receive_v not_o something_o or_o other_o small_a or_o great_a which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o belie●…e_v to_o be_v god_n word_n do_v you_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v by_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v no_o and_o so_o that_o your_o understanding_n have_v no_o sin_n you_o deceive_v yourself_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o you_o if_o yea_o then_o be_v you_o not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v god_n word_n if_o not_o oblige_v than_o your_o error_n be_v no_o sin_n so_o that_o you_o make_v every_o sinful_a error_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o proud_o deny_v that_o you_o have_v any_o sinful_a error_n lest_o you_o shall_v be_v a_o heretic_n i_o add_v that_o their_o church_n be_v constitute_v of_o man_n that_o sinful_o neglect_v some_o point_n of_o truth_n or_o other_o sufficient_o propose_v ergo_fw-la be_v it_o constitute_v of_o heretic_n 7._o to_o this_o he_o answer_v that_o whatever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v so_o believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o hereitck_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a but_o contradiction_n to_o what_o be_v know_v damn_v to_o they_o to_o be_v propound_v by_o those_o that_o have_v power_n to_o oblige_v they_o as_o be_v their_o lawful_a superior_n which_o make_v a_o heretic_n r._n b._n 1._o but_o still_o you_o agree_v not_o nor_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v necessary_o 2._o by_o this_o we_o be_v all_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n for_o we_o believe_v all_o explicitly_a that_o be_v necssary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o all_o the_o rest_n implicit_o by_o a_o double_a implicit_a faith_n 1._o in_o god_n and_o our_o redeemer_n 2._o in_o the_o inspire_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n we_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o which_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v as_o god_n word_n 3._o yea_o and_o all_o that_o we_o know_v to_o be_v propound_v by_o any_o oblige_a superior_n for_o we_o know_v not_o the_o pope_n nor_o your_o contradictory_n council_n to_o be_v such_o my_o next_o qu._n 2._o be_v what_o mean_v you_o by_o sufficient_a proposal_n 8._o w._n i._n such_o as_o be_v sufficient_a among_o man_n in_o humanis_fw-la to_o oblige_v one_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o a_o king_n have_v exact_v such_o and_o such_o law_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v a_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tr●…dition_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o he_o take_v sufficiency_n respective_o to_o the_o promulgator_n viz._n as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v for_o a_o king_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o publish_v his_o law_n in_o every_o parish_n or_o county_n but_o only_o to_o make_v such_o a_o publication_n of_o they_o in_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o that_o man_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o they_o king_n send_v not_o schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v every_o man_n how_o to_o prove_v that_o his_o law_n be_v not_o counterfeit_v and_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o for_o the_o enact_v of_o they_o be_v a_o late_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o easy_o notify_v as_o near_o unto_o they_o and_o no_o other_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o they_o be_v require_v but_o such_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o obedience_n of_o they_o which_o belong_v to_o every_o man_n in_o his_o place_n this_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o if_o such_o a_o publication_n of_o god_n law_n be_v sufficient_a million_o that_o never_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o what_o christ_n be_v have_v such_o a_o sufficient_a publication_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v publish_v in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o perhaps_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n where_o they_o dwell_v though_o they_o never_o hear_v it_o 2._o but_o when_o man_n have_v the_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o statute_n be_v make_v and_o such_o a_o book_n send_v from_o god_n this_o do_v not_o acquaint_v man_n what_o those_o statutesor_n that_o book_n contain_v sothat_o by_o this_o rule_n it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o know_v that_o god_n make_v the_o bible_n without_o know_v what_o be_v in_o it_o or_o else_o he_o that_o be_v but_o tell_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o book_n be_v bind_v by_o that_o much_o to_o know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o 3._o but_o note_v the_o popish_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n w._n i._n tell_v we_o after_o the_o rest_n that_o we_o must_v know_v these_o thing_n reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o one_o that_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o church_n to_o know_v yet_o 1._o that_o he_o have_v a_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o he_o have_v authorize_v some_o man_n to_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n to_o judge_n that_o church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n and_o 3._o that_o he_o have_v particular_o authorize_v they_o to_o judge_n which_o be_v and_o be_v not_o his_o revelation_n 4._o and_o to_o know_v who_o be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v this_o high_a tribunal_n to_o all_o the_o world_n viz._n for_o those_o of_o abassia_n that_o have_v not_o so_o much_o history_n as_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n or_o such_o a_o man_n as_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o world_n till_o oviedo_n be_v send_v who_o tell_v it_o but_o to_o few_o can_v yet_o know_v that_o this_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v their_o judge_n and_o from_o they_o they_o must_v receive_v the_o gospel_n 5._o and_o to_o know_v that_o this_o universal_a tribunal_n be_v infallible_a before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v suppose_v to_o give_v they_o their_o infallibility_n alas_o must_v every_o poor_a infidel_n know_v all_o this_o before_o he_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n when_o we_o that_o live_v among_o they_o and_o read_v their_o law_n and_o doctrine_n can_v easy_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o pope_n who_o by_o general_a council_n be_v charge_v not_o only_o with_o murder_n adultery_n simony_n perjury_n etc._n etc._n but_o with_o heresy_n also_o or_o infidelity_n nor_o the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o general_a council_n who_o be_v accuse_v by_o pope_n and_o by_o other_o council_n of_o error_n heresy_n or_o schism_n 4._o but_o he_o add_v another_o way_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o 1._o if_o this_o will_v 9_o serve_v than_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v have_v true_a faith_n that_o believe_v no_o humane_a infallible_a tribunal_n over_o all_o the_o world_n much_o less_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v such_o a_o tribunal_n for_o we_o have_v notorious_a universal_a tradition_n deliver_v we_o all_o our_o religion_n 2._o but_o yet_o these_o be_v hard_a term_n for_o every_o poor_a heathen_a to_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o alas_o how_o shall_v the_o million_o of_o people_n through_o the_o world_n who_o know_v nothing_o that_o be_v many_o day_n journey_n from_o their_o house_n know_v
church_n do_v notorious_o believe_v and_o practise_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o cup_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n by_o the_o people_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o take_v you_o at_o your_o word_n nor_o call_v you_o heretic_n mere_o on_o the_o account_n assert_v by_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o your_o rule_n be_v false_a and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v know_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v hold_v some_o opinion_n of_o chronology_n or_o genealogy_n or_o cosmography_n as_o about_o cainan_n or_o the_o age_n of_o sem_fw-mi or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o artipode_n especial_o in_o the_o dismal_a nine_o century_n and_o if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o they_o take_v this_o point_n for_o a_o divine_a revelation_n believe_v the_o septuagint_n or_o some_o other_o mistranslation_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v before_o jeromes_n time_n this_o man_n so_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o err_v in_o so_o small_a a_o point_n be_v no_o heretic_n for_o so_o think_v for_o i_o will_v know_v of_o yourself_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o follower_n be_v not_o heretic_n for_o the_o septuagint_n be_v long_o take_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o be_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a long_v after_o by_o your_o universal_a roman_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o those_o text_n be_v god_n word_n which_o yet_o afterward_o you_o alter_v many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o alteration_n in_o the_o one_o be_v make_v by_o sixtus_n 5_o and_o clement_n 8_o all_o which_o be_v so_o many_o judgement_n that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v that_o before_o take_v the_o other_o reading_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o you_o can_v make_v one_o thing_n god_n word_n to_o day_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o morrow_n 5._o but_o by_o this_o rule_n also_o we_o be_v acquit_v from_o heresy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o we_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v and_o practise_v contrary_a to_o we_o which_o sure_o be_v notorious_a to_o very_a few_o at_o most_o and_o indeed_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o more_o because_o we_o dare_v not_o with_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o and_o in_o former_a age_n r._n b._n be_v not_o the_o bible_n a_o public_a testimony_n and_o record_n and_o be_v universal_o receive_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n and_o yet_o abundance_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o be_v not_o actual_o know_v or_o believe_v by_o most_o of_o your_o own_o church_n w._n j._n it_o be_v only_o a_o tradition_n that_o whatever_o be_v there_o deliver_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v no_o tradition_n that_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o every_o sentence_n 13._o contain_v in_o it_o when_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v capable_a of_o many_o sense_n r._n b._n worse_o and_o worse_o still_o 1._o tradition_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v significant_a and_o intelligible_a or_o else_o it_o be_v worse_a and_o more_o defective_a than_o the_o common_a word_n of_o man_n this_o intelligible_a bible_n or_o word_n therefore_o deliver_v to_o we_o its_o own_o sense_n if_o not_o than_o council_n do_v not_o deliver_v we_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n or_o their_o own_o for_o god_n can_v speak_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o their_o word_n be_v no_o more_o plain_a than_o he_o yet_o a_o multitude_n of_o plain_a intelligible_a text_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o many_o of_o your_o church_n who_o you_o call_v not_o heretic_n yea_o your_o learned_a commentator_n differ_v and_o fight_v about_o their_o sense_n 2._o therefore_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o every_o sentence_n you_o do_v but_o fly_v and_o hide_v your_o fraud_n if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o they_o be_v in_o god_n own_o word_n but_o as_o expound_v by_o your_o church_n all_o christian_a ear_n shall_v abhor_v your_o blasphemy_n if_o you_o mean_v only_o that_o there_o be_v some_o text_n so_o difficult_a as_o that_o most_o christian_n can_v understand_v they_o or_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o various_a sense_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o what_o be_v those_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v every_o man_n a_o heretic_n that_o err_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n or_o not_o and_o it_o be_v perverse_a that_o you_o say_v of_o divers_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n for_o a_o text_n may_v be_v expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n and_o context_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n if_o by_o that_o word_n you_o mean_v as_o be_v usual_a contrary_a to_o the_o harmony_n of_o christian_a necessary_a truth_n yea_o or_o contrary_a to_o any_o other_o truth_n whatever_o save_o that_o text_n itself_o and_o now_o reader_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o thy_o reason_n whether_o this_o man_n have_v give_v we_o any_o regardable_a notice_n at_o all_o what_o be_v heresy_n or_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o or_o have_v not_o trifle_v and_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o heresy_n be_v i_o will_v brief_o tell_v you_o the_o word_n signify_v election_n be_v use_v in_o the_o begin_n sometime_o for_o any_o sect_n or_o party_n divide_v from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 14._o church_n and_o christian_n be_v call_v a_o heresy_n by_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o christian_n the_o name_n signify_v any_o party_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v to_o differ_v in_o some_o necessary_a thing_n from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v separate_v from_o they_o as_o unmeet_a for_o their_o communion_n and_o gather_v themselves_o into_o divide_a society_n so_o that_o differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o church_n and_o make_v different_a sect_n or_o society_n therefore_o which_o separate_v from_o and_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o gross_a sort_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n schism_n than_o be_v low_a signify_v either_o the_o contentious_a make_n of_o division_n within_o a_o church_n without_o separate_n from_o it_o or_o else_o the_o break_n of_o one_o church_n into_o many_o without_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n or_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n and_o so_o long_o after_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o such_o schism_n only_o and_o hence_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n and_o the_o novatian_o and_o many_o other_o be_v call_v heretic_n and_o sometime_o use_v more_o cautelous_o in_o a_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o deny_v some_o essential_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o practice_n and_o sometime_o in_o a_o yet_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o upon_o such_o a_o denial_n of_o some_o essential_a point_n do_v gather_v into_o a_o separate_a society_n to_o maintain_v their_o error_n and_o oppugn_v the_o truth_n and_o according_a to_o these_o various_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n horesie_n and_o heretic_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o a_o heretic_n may_v or_o may_v not_o be_v save_v and_o be_v or_o be_v not_o within_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o w._n 1_n do_v deceitful_o confound_v of_o which_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o the_o end_n and_o show_v you_o by_o a_o instance_n of_o philastrius_n how_o mischievous_a it_o be_v to_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o heresy_n against_o every_o different_a opinion_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o so_o to_o make_v heretic_n of_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n chap._n iii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o word_n pope_n w._n j._n by_o pope_n i_o mean_v st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o lawful_a successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o 1_o rome_n have_v authority_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o govern_v all_o particular_a church_n next_o under_o christ._n r._n b._n i_o be_o never_o the_o near_o know_v the_o pope_n by_o this_o till_o i_o know_v how_o st._n peter_n successor_n may_v be_v know_v to_o i_o q._n 1._o what_o personal_a qualification_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o other_o bishop_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o know_v r._n b._n if_o so_o than_o all_o those_o be_v no_o pope_n that_o be_v heretic_n or_o deny_v essential_a point_n of_o faith_n w._n j._n it_o be_v true_a they_o be_v no_o pope_n while_o
formal_a heretic_n if_o any_o such_o be_v r._n b._n as_o john_n 22_o 23_o eugenius_n four_o etc._n etc._n w._n j._n prove_v that_o r._n b._n the_o article_n bring_v against_o they_o and_o the_o judgement_n thereupon_o be_v a_o proof_n if_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v a_o proof_n viz._n in_o the_o council_n at_o rome_n against_o john_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n against_o divers_a at_o basil_n against_o eugenius_n and_o other_o much_o elder_n against_o honorius_n etc._n etc._n be_v a_o general_n council_n no_o proof_n i_o add_v that_o so_o they_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o he_o answer_v prove_v that_o history_n to_o which_o i_o say_v general_a council_n be_v your_o catholic_n church_n representative_a and_o those_o charge_v these_o pope_n with_o heresy_n and_o infidelity_n if_o you_o be_v so_o frontless_a as_o to_o deny_v it_o i_o will_v not_o therefore_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o transcribe_v council_n as_o oft_o as_o you_o can_v say_v prove_v it_o i_o add_v and_o all_o those_o that_o want_v the_o necessary_a ability_n to_o the_o essential_o of_o their_o work_n he_o say_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o pope_n i_o answer_v that_o you_o have_v have_v child_n pope_n and_o some_o that_o be_v illiterate_a and_o ignorant_a i_o have_v oft_o prove_v by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o your_o own_o historian_n how_o oft_o must_v i_o repeat_v they_o i_o add_v that_o therefore_o their_o church_n have_v oft_o be_v headless_a and_o the_o succession_n interrupt_v council_n have_v thus_o censure_v many_o pope_n w._n j._n when_o you_o have_v prove_v the_o precedent_n prove_v that_o r._n b._n reader_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o papacy_n in_o a_o desperate_a case_n if_o arm_n uphold_v it_o not_o when_o their_o champion_n have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v for_o the_o very_a successive_a be_v of_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o bid_v i_o prove_v that_o which_o all_o man_n that_o read_v they_o know_v be_v common_o and_o copious_o assert_v by_o their_o council_n and_o historian_n how_o oft_o have_v i_o cite_v their_o platina_n werverus_fw-la yea_o baro●…us_n binnius_n genebrard_n their_o great_a flatterer_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o be_v child_n and_o some_o illiterate_a and_o fifty_o together_o be_v not_o apostolical_a but_o apostatical_a etc._n etc._n w._n i._o prove_v that_o they_o be_v lawful_a council_n which_o so_o censure_v any_o pope_n which_o we_o admit_v as_o true_a and_o lawful_a r._n b._n alas_o poor_a man_n be_v you_o drive_v to_o that_o 1._o if_o you_o have_v the_o face_n to_o deny_v those_o to_o be_v lawful_a council_n that_o censure_v honorius_n the_o two_o john_n eugenius_n etc._n etc._n we_o may_v as_o well_o and_o a_o little_a better_o use_v the_o same_o liberty_n and_o question_n whether_o that_o of_o trent_n florence_n lateran_n etc._n etc._n be_v lawful_a 2._o may_v not_o the_o world_n see_v now_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o your_o faith_n and_o the_o validity_n of_o your_o authority_n and_o tradition_n even_o your_o own_o will_n general_a council_n tell_v you_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o your_o forefather_n if_o you_o like_v they_o but_o if_o the_o pope_n dislike_v they_o they_o be_v no_o lawful_a council_n and_o their_o testimony_n null_a the_o sum_n be_v whatever_o council_n say_v the_o pope_n shall_v never_o be_v prove_v a_o heretic_n or_o infidel_n till_o he_o will_v say_v that_o he_o be_v one_o himself_o and_o will_v subscribe_v as_o marcellinus_n do_v to_o his_o own_o condemnation_n or_o with_o liberius_n confess_v his_o fault_n 3._o and_o have_v not_o these_o man_n a_o notable_a advantage_n to_o proselyte_n lady_n and_o illiterate_a person_n when_o if_o general_a council_n damn_v their_o pope_n it_o be_v but_o bid_v they_o prove_v those_o to_o have_v be_v lawful_a council_n and_o though_o i_o can_v prove_v to_o they_o that_o even_o their_o own_o pope_n have_v affirm_v they_o lawful_a yet_o few_o woman_n be_v so_o far_o skill_v in_o history_n and_o so_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o every_o impudent_a deceiver_n and_o when_o i_o have_v prove_v all_o it_o be_v but_o as_o bellarmine_n fetch_v a_o denial_n out_o of_o the_o word_n conciliariter_fw-la against_o the_o approbation_n of_o martin_n 5._o 4._o but_o be_v this_o enough_o for_o you_o what_o if_o none_o be_v lawful_a council_n that_o displease_v the_o pope_n be_v they_o therefore_o no_o competent_a witness_n of_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o the_o it_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n shall_v every_o word_n be_v establish_v and_o be_v not_o so_o many_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o other_o clerk_n as_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n constance_n pisa_n etc._n etc._n competent_a witness_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n simone_a murderer_n etc._n etc._n have_v the_o pope_n but_o consent_v these_o council_n have_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o infallible_a and_o may_v they_o not_o be_v credible_a witness_n against_o he_o till_o he_o consent_n how_o shall_v we_o believe_v they_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v hold_v and_o do_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n a_o thousand_o or_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o if_o after_o examination_n of_o witness_n we_o may_v not_o believe_v they_o concern_v one_o man_n one_o public_a sinner_n in_o their_o own_o time_n and_o know_v to_o many_o of_o themselves_o what_o then_o will_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o historian_n or_o a_o hundred_o historian_n signify_v if_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o hundred_o bishop_n congregate_v and_o deliberate_o examine_v consult_v and_o sentence_v be_v false_a r._n b._n i_o next_o ask_v q._n 2._o where_o and_o how_o must_v this_o institution_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o papacy_n 2._o be_v find_v w._n j._n in_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a r._n b._n 1._o remember_v reader_n that_o even_o now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o church-governor_n be_v know_v without_o revelation_n else_o god_n have_v make_v a_o imprudent_a government_n he_o can_v not_o mean_v that_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v man_n but_o governor_n distinct_a from_o usurper_n or_o else_o he_o have_v speak_v nonsense_n or_o impertinent_o and_o yet_o now_o it_o be_v in_o the_o reveal_v word_n of_o god_n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o they_o never_o give_v the_o world_n assurance_n how_o to_o know_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o unwritten_a word_n nor_o where_o to_o find_v it_o so_o as_o to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v w._n j._n we_o say_v we_o have_v r._n b._n just_o as_o now_o you_o do_v to_o i_o if_o that_o word_n of_o god_n be_v still_o unwritten_a and_o neither_o to_o be_v find_v in_o your_o council_n nor_o any_o of_o your_o book_n i_o challenge_v all_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o tell_v we_o where_o we_o may_v certain_o come_v to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v and_o when_o we_o have_v all_o especial_o when_o so_o great_a council_n as_o ariminum_n ephes._n 2_o constance_z and_o basil_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o your_o very_a fundamental_o of_o authority_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n so_o near_o at_o hand_n r._n b._n till_o you_o prove_v christ_n institution_n which_o you_o have_v neu●…_n do_v you_o free_v we_o from_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n w._n j._n all_o be_v free_a from_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n we_o believe_v in_o god_n but_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n who_o of_o we_o ever_o charge_v you_o to_o do_v so_o r._n b._n even_o they_o that_o charge_v we_o to_o trust_v our_o very_a salvation_n upon_o his_o infallibility_n veracity_n or_o authority_n as_o from_o which_o only_a with_o his_o council_n we_o must_v know_v what_o be_v god_n word_n and_o what_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o what_o be_v it_o to_o believe_v in_o but_o to_o believe_v his_o authority_n and_o veracity_n and_o trust_v upon_o it_o but_o we_o thank_v you_o for_o discharge_v we_o from_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n but_o i_o doubt_v when_o we_o be_v in_o your_o power_n you_o will_v call_v we_o to_o a_o after-reckoning_n and_o burn_v we_o for_o not_o believe_v on_o he_o when_o you_o acquit_v we_o from_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o much_o of_o your_o faith_n do_v lie_v on_o a_o letter_n r._n b._n quest._n 3._o will_v any_o one_o election_n prove_v he_o to_o be_v pope_n or_o who_o must_v elect_v he_o 3_o ☞_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o by_o approve_a custom_n be_v esteem_v by_o those_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v fit_a for_o that_o charge_n and_o with_o who_o election_n the_o church_n be_v satisfy_v r._n b._n now_o we_o come_v to_o their_o desperation_n never_o be_v man_n put_v to_o more_o open_a confusion_n in_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o their_o cause_n something_o must_v be_v say_v but_o they_o know_v not_o what_o i_o note_v here_o that_o if_o no_o election_n or_o any_o one_o election_n will_v serve_v turn_n the_o scholar_n
christ_n have_v make_v we_o a_o king_n or_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o world_n he_o will_v have_v tell_v we_o who_o must_v choose_v he_o to_o save_v the_o man_n at_o the_o antipode_n their_o journey_n 2._o but_o why_o pretend_v you_o then_o the_o people_n consent_n when_o you_o plead_v it_o unnecessary_a in_o poland_n that_o their_o diet_n choose_v their_o king_n be_v from_o a_o know_a reason_n it_o be_v the_o constitution_n of_o their_o kingdom_n which_o the_o people_n agree_v to_o and_o choose_v many_o of_o the_o chooser_n but_o when_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n constitute_v your_o cardinal_n to_o be_v the_o elector_n or_o which_o of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o any_o other_o than_o the_o pope_n himself_o god_n make_v bishopric_n like_o corporation_n where_o all_o may_v choose_v the_o mayor_n who_o make_v they_o like_o great_a kingdom_n or_o set_v one_o over_o all_o the_o world_n where_o the_o people_n can_v choose_v nor_o god_n make_v any_o chooser_n be_v the_o question_n r._n b._n 4._o according_a to_o this_o rule_n your_o succession_n have_v be_v frequent_o interrupt_v when_o against_o the_o will_n of_o general_n council_n and_o of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n your_o pope_n have_v keep_v the_o seat_n 12._o by_o force_n w._n j._n these_o be_v generality_n what_o pope_n what_o council_n in_o particular_a name_n and_o prove_v if_o you_o will_v he_o answer_v r._n b._n what_o disgraceful_a ignorance_n be_v you_o force_v to_o pretend_v what_o need_v i_o go_v over_o your_o schism_n what_o need_v i_o name_v any_o more_o than_o eugenius_n the_o four_o depose_v by_o a_o great_a general_n council_n and_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n disow_v your_o pope_n at_o this_o day_n r._n b._n i_o tell_v he_o how_o his_o instance_n even_o about_o civil_a power_n fail_v see_v the_o consent_n of_o a_o people_n 13._o pre-engaged_n to_o their_o prince_n give_v not_o right_a to_o a_o usurper_n w._n j._n the_o people_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o consent_v free_o and_o lawful_o to_o a_o usurper_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n lawful_o indeed_o they_o can_v and_o that_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o i_o affirm_v you_o confute_v i_o by_o grant_v what_o i_o say_v when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o lawful_a election_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o the_o world_n we_o will_v obey_v he_o and_o so_o we_o will_v any_o prelate_n or_o priest_n that_o have_v a_o know_v lawful_a election_n r._n b._n will_v any_o diocese_n suffice_v ad_fw-la esse_fw-la what_o if_o it_o be_v but_o in_o particulor_n assembly_n w._n j._n it_o must_v be_v more_o than_o a_o parish_n or_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n which_o have_v not_o different_a inferior_a 14._o pastor_n and_o one_o who_o be_v their_o superior_a etc._n etc._n r._n b._n 1._o how_o ambiguous_o and_o fraudulent_o do_v you_o answer_v no_o man_n can_v tell_v by_o this_o whether_o you_o unbishop_n all_o that_o have_v but_o one_o parish_n or_o congregation_n or_o only_o all_o that_o have_v not_o presbyter_n under_o they_o which_o ever_o you_o mean_v it_o be_v notorious_o false_a and_o a_o nullify_n of_o the_o ancient_a episcopacy_n ignatim_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o hi●…_n day_n one_o church_n be_v know_v by_o one_o altar_n and_o one_o bishop_n with_o the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n and_o though_o i_o think_v not_o as_o dr._n hamond_n that_o all_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o scripture-time_n be_v settle_v as_o the_o sole_a pastor_n of_o single_a congregation_n without_o any_o presbyter_n under_o they_o yet_o when_o you_o consider_v with_o who_o he_o agree_v in_o this_o viz._n dionysius_n petavius_n and_o what_o st._n clara_n say_v for_o it_o father_v it_o on_o scotus_n we_o think_v you_o shall_v not_o so_o far_o differ_v from_o your_o own_o doctor_n as_o to_o deny_v all_o those_o to_o be_v true_a bishop_n of_o the_o scrip●…re-times_n who_o they_o think_v be_v the_o only_a bishop_n you_o have_v a_o custom_n of_o call_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n even_o peter_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o rome_n do_v not_o those_o first_o bishop_n than_o make_v all_o the_o presbyter_n that_o be_v under_o they_o qu._n whether_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n till_o they_o have_v make_v those_o presbyter_n if_o no_o than_o those_o first_o presbyter_n have_v not_o episcopal_a ordination_n if_o yea_o then_o habetur_fw-la quaesitum_fw-la the_o truth_n be_v all_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n be_v the_o pastor_n of_o single_a church_n not_o near_o so_o big_a as_o many_o of_o our_o parish_n i_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v this_o at_o large_a i_o instance_a to_o he_o only_o in_o gregory_n neoc●…sariensis_n who_o be_v bishop_n only_o of_o seventeen_o soul_n when_o he_o come_v thither_o first_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n how_o know_v you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o country_n adjacent_a 2._o know_v you_o not_o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o multiply_v christian_n and_o make_v himself_o a_o competent_a diocese_n r._n b._n i_o know_v the_o first_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o history_n that_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o seventeen_o in_o the_o city_n over_o who_o he_o be_v set_v and_o speak_v of_o no_o more_o in_o such_o circumstance_n as_o will_v have_v occasion_v it_o 2._o and_o i_o believe_v your_o second_o but_o do_v not_o you_o see_v that_o you_o desert_n your_o cause_n and_o contradict_v yourself_o 1._o speak_v out_o be_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o infidel_n be_v they_o his_o church_n or_o be_v he_o only_o to_o convert_v and_o gather_v they_o to_o the_o church_n 2._o be_v he_o not_o a_o bishop_n there_o before_o he_o have_v convert_v any_o one_o to_o those_o seventeen_o alone_a you_o dare_v deny_v none_o of_o this_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n before_o he_o have_v more_o congregation_n than_o one_o and_o before_o he_o have_v any_o presbyter_n to_o govern_v and_o here_o you_o may_v see_v how_o the_o change_v that_o pope_n and_o their_o prelate_n have_v make_v in_o the_o church_n constrain_v they_o to_o defend_v they_o by_o subvert_v their_o own_o foundation_n for_o if_o those_o be_v no_o bishop_n who_o have_v but_o one_o congregation_n yea_o and_o those_o that_o have_v no_o subject-presbyter_n than_o the_o first_o age_n if_o not_o also_o the_o second_o except_o in_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n or_o at_o least_o the_o founder_n be_v not_o such_o and_o their_o episcopacy_n as_o they_o describe_v it_o have_v no_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n truth_n and_o error_n will_v never_o make_v a_o close_a coalition_n chap._n v._o q._n what_o mean_v you_o by_o tradition_n w._n i._n i_o understand_v by_o tradition_n the_o visible_a delivery_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o all_o case_n of_o the_o reveal_v 1●…_n will_n of_o god_n either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a r._n b._n i_o suppose_v by_o visible_a from_o hand_n to_o hand_n you_o mean_v principal_o of_o the_o unwritten_a audible_a from_o ear_n to_o ear_n by_o speech_n but_o all_o the_o doubt_n be_v by_o who_o it_o must_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o pastor_n or_o people_n or_o both_o by_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n or_o bishop_n disjunct_n by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n or_o by_o how_o many_o w._n j._n by_o such_o and_o so_o many_o proportionable_o as_o suffice_v in_o a_o kingdom_n to_o certify_v the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o ancient_a universal_a receive_v custom_n in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o be_v moral_o consider_v r._n b._n o_o wary_a disputant_n that_o take_v heed_n lest_o you_o shall_v answer_v while_o you_o seem_v to_o answer_v reader_n a_o kingdom_n be_v not_o so_o big_a as_o all_o the_o world_n the_o custom_n of_o a_o kingdom_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o constant_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o if_o they_o differ_v about_o it_o record_n and_o lawbook_n decide_v it_o expository_o and_o judge_n by_o the_o decision_n of_o particular_a man_n case_n by_o such_o rule_n but_o can_v custom_n be_v know_v as_o well_o over_o all_o the_o world_n yea_o and_o can_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v as_o easy_o know_v as_o practise_v custom_n can_v we_o know_v as_o easy_o what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o abassia_n armenia_n syria_n egypt_n etc._n etc._n as_o of_o england_n can_v they_o of_o abassia_n tell_v what_o be_v the_o true_a tradition_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o have_v tradition_n in_o their_o own_o country_n so_o different_a from_o we_o they_o have_v many_o book_n as_o sacred_a among_o they_o by_o tradition_n which_o we_o receive_v not_o they_o have_v annual_a baptism_n and_o other_o ceremony_n by_o tradition_n which_o we_o account_v to_o be_v unlawful_a here_o i_o tell_v w._n i._n 1._o how_o certain_o tradition_n be_v against_o they_o when_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n
deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n and_o that_o as_o by_o tradition_n and_o how_o lame_a their_o tradition_n be_v which_o be_v carry_v but_o by_o their_o private_a affirmation_n and_o be_v but_o the_o unproved_a say_n of_o a_o sect._n to_o this_o he_o say_v w._n j._n that_o this_o belong_v to_o our_o controversy_n and_o not_o to_o the_o explication_n of_o our_o term_n and_o so_o i_o must_v pass_v it_o by_o r._n b._n q._n 2._o what_o proof_n or_o notice_n must_v satisfy_v as_o in_o particular_n what_o be_v true_a tradition_n 2._o w._n j._n such_o as_o with_o proportion_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n or_o notice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o temporal_a kingdom_n r._n b._n but_o you_o dare_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o be_v that_o be_v proportionable_a this_o be_v answer_v before_o i_o add_v be_v it_o necessary_a for_o every_o christian_n to_o be_v able_a to_o weigh_v the_o credit_n of_o contradicting-party_n when_o one_o half_a of_o the_o world_n say_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o another_o thing_n what_o opportunity_n have_v ordinary_a christian_n to_o compare_v they_o and_o discern_v the_o moral_a advantage_n on_o each_o side_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n when_o two_o or_o three_o part_n be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o do_v salvation_n lie_v on_o this_o w._n j._n as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v to_o know_v which_o book_n be_v and_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n among_o those_o that_o be_v in_o controversy_n r._n b._n that_o these_o book_n be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n 1._o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n 2._o and_o a_o assertion_n easy_o remember_v 3._o and_o all_o the_o church_n be_v agree_v of_o all_o that_o we_o take_v as_o ca●…cal_a 4._o and_o yet_o man_n that_o practical_o believe_v but_o the_o creed_n and_o summary_n of_o religion_n shall_v certain_o be_v save_v though_o they_o erroneous_o doubt_v of_o some_o of_o the_o uncontroverted_a book_n as_o chronicle_n esther_n canticle_n etc._n etc._n much_o more_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o controvert_v apocrypha_fw-la but_o 1._o your_o tradition_n in_o question_n be_v many_o particular_n hard_o for_o to_o be_v remember_v 2._o and_o that_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o fact_n where_o a_o word_n forget_v or_o alter_v change_v the_o thing_n 3._o and_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v against_o it_o 4._o and_o you_o will_v lay_v the_o people_n salvation_n on_o it_o yea_o and_o make_v it_o one_o of_o your_o cheat_a quibble_n to_o prove_v your_o religion_n safe_a than_o we_o because_o some_o protestant_n say_v a_o papist_n may_v be_v save_v but_o you_o say_v that_o protestant_n can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v because_o you_o have_v less_o sincerity_n and_o charity_n be_v not_o here_o difference_n enough_o if_o you_o hold_v that_o all_o they_o be_v damn_v that_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v canonical_a peruse_v bishop_n cousin_n catalogue_n of_o council_n and_o father_n that_o receive_v they_o not_o and_o see_v whether_o you_o damn_v not_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n for_o man_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o your_o pope_n than_o there_o be_v that_o they_o try_v all_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v canonical_a and_o know_v it_o why_o then_o do_v you_o find_v your_o belief_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o your_o forebelieve_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o vicar_n or_o your_o church_n his_o church_n and_o why_o do_v you_o make_v such_o a_o stir_n in_o the_o world_n to_o affright_v poor_a people_n to_o believe_v and_o be_v subject_a to_o your_o pope_n i_o here_o ask_v he_o must_v all_o the_o people_n here_o take_v the_o word_n of_o their_o present_a teacher_n and_o he_o humane_a dare_v not_o answer_v yea_o or_o nay_o but_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o determination_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n ans._n if_o it_o be_v no_o more_o it_o give_v they_o no_o certainty_n but_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o one_o man_n as_o a_o teacher_n they_o be_v broug●…●…o_o ●…cern_v themselves_o those_o notify_a evidence_n by_o which_o the_o teacher_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d book_n be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o they_o attain_v no_o high_a than_o to_o believe_v fide_fw-la d●…_n the_o 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n the_o doubt_v or_o ignorance_n of_o some_o text_n or_o book_n will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o scripture_n that_o impress_n of_o divine_a authority_n which_o to_o a_o prepare_a hea●…_n o●…_n reader_n will_v 〈◊〉_d convince_v he_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n though_o not_o r●…e_v he_o of_o every_o particular_a text_n and_o book_n r._n b._n then_o most_o of_o the_o world_n must_v believe_v against_o you_o because_o most_o of_o the_o teacher_n be_v against_o 4._o you_o tradition_n quite_o ●…eth_v p●…er_n w._n j._n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n external_a communion_n and_o dependence_n of_o pastor_n which_o be_v contrary_a in_o belief_n ●…o_o 〈◊〉_d any_o way_n to_o be_v parallel_n with_o we_o in_o extent_n and_o multitude_n prove_v there_o be_v and_o name_v it_o all_o our_o adversary_n together_o be_v a_o patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n and_o as_o much_o adversary_n one_o to_o another_o as_o they_o be_v to_o we_o the_o one_o justify_v we_o in_o that_o wherein_o the_o other_o condemn_v we_o so_o that_o no_o beed_n be_v to_o be_v take_v to_o their_o testimony_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la convenientia_fw-la r_o b._n they_o agree_v not_o with_o your_o interest_n but_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o to_o be_v heed_v i_o doubt_v the_o testimony_n of_o your_o three_o or_o four_o part_n will_v prove_v much_o less_o regardable_a let_v we_o try_v the_o case_n for_o here_o you_o be_v utter_o confound_v 1_o indeed_o none_o that_o our_o ordinary_a language_n call_v a_o congregation_n that_o be_v man_n that_o meet_v local_o together_o be_v so_o big_a as_o all_o your_o party_n but_o a_o church_n far_o better_a unite_v than_o you_o be_v be_v far_o great_a than_o you_o those_o that_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n ☞_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o greek_n armenian_n abassine_n syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n copty_v etc._n etc._n have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v they_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o head_n of_o the_o church_n believe_v in_o the_o same_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o ●…ly_a g●…st_n and_o be_v devote_v to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n desire_n and_o practise_v essential_a to_o christianity_n in_o the_o creed_n lords-prayer_n and_o decalogue_n and_o recei●…e_v all_o the_o ●…re_n as_o god_n ●…ord_n which_o i●…●…y_v here_o receive_v by_o we_o as_o canonical_a these_o have_v all_o the_o ●…ls_n of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o but_o such_o be_v all_o the_o forementioned_a christian_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n be_v the_o constitutive_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o head_n be_v christ_n the_o body_n be_v christian_n 1_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n viz._n the_o same_o baptism_n ●…reed_v and_o scripture_n 2._o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o external_a communion_n if_o you_o mean_v external_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o it_o and_o much_o more_o they_o have_v the_o same_o scripture_n read_v and_o 〈◊〉_d they_o preach_v the_o same_o gospel_n they_o use_v the_o same_o sacrament_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n viz._n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n yea_o they_o be_v common_o for_o some_o confirmation_n ordination_n 〈◊〉_d of_o penitence_n and_o absolution_n of_o p●…nitents_n matrimony_n etc._n etc._n though_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n be_v fit_a for_o they_o all_o much_o less_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cove●…_n grace_n they_o observe_v the_o same_o lord_n day_n for_o public_a worship_n they_o pray_v confess_v sin_n give_v thanks_o and_o praise_n to_o god_n and_o hold_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o communication_n to_o each_o other_o in_o want_n this_o be_v their_o external_a communion_n 3._o they_o have_v the_o same_o depen●…_n of_o the_o people_n on_o their_o pastor_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n authorize_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o guide_v the_o church_n and_o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o public_a worship_v of_o god_n but_o if_o
you_o mean_v that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o ext●…_n communion_n of_o pastor_n in_o dependence_n on_o one_o as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pastor_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n indeed_o there_o be_v none_o such_o but_o you_o for_o it_o be_v in_o that_o that_o they_o differ_v from_o you_o reader_n be_v not_o here_o a_o excellent_a disputer_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o point_n of_o a_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o 5._o church_n he_o say_v that_o no_o one_o party_n which_o be_v for_o a_o universal_a governor_n and_o yet_o be_v against_o a_o universal_a governor_n be_v so_o big_a as_o their_o party_n i_o grant_v it_o have_v they_o all_o dependence_n on_o one_o as_o a_o universal_a governor_n they_o be_v not_o against_o on_o universal_a governor_n the_o abassine_n have_v one_o abuna_n but_o he_o claim_v no_o universal_a government_n the_o armenian_n have_v their_o catholic_n bishop_n but_o he_o claim_v no_o universal_a power_n the_o greek_n have_v their_o patriarch_n at_o constantinople_n but_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n we_o be_v all_o against_o any_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v unite_v under_o no_o other_o you_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr reproach_n not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v far_o more_o unite_v than_o your_o church_n as_o papal_n be_v not_o the_o se●…en_a point_n of_o 〈◊〉_d mention_v by_o paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o as_o good_a as_o you_o 1._o they_o have_v one_o ●…ead_n that_o never_o ●…arieth_v and_o who_o all_o receive_v you_o have_v a_o head_n reject_v by_o most_o christian_n and_o oft_o turn_v into_o two_o or_o three_o head_n one_o say_v i_o be_o the_o head_n and_o another_o i_o be_o the_o head_n and_o set_v the_o world_n in_o blood_n and_o contention_n to_o try_v it_o out_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v get_v the_o better_a as_o your_o forty_o year_n schism_n show_v 2._o therefore_o this_o church_n which_o you_o reproach_n as_o patch_v be_v but_o one_o but_o you_o be_v real_o many_o and_o not_o one_o specifical_o as_o well_o as_o oft_o numerical_o when_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n you_o have_v two_o or_o three_o church_n for_o it_o be_v the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la that_o individuate_v the_o society_n and_o de_fw-fr specie_fw-la you_o be_v still_o three_o church_n as_o hold_v three_o several_a head_n one_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o head_n another_o a_o council_n and_o a_o three_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n agree_v and_o these_o head_n have_v oft_o condemn_v and_o depose_v one_o another_o council_n namn_v pope_n as_o heretic_n infidel_n simonist_n murderer_n adulterer_n and_o pope_n accuse_v council_n of_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n at_o least_o and_o to_o this_o day_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n which_o be_v true_a pope_n nor_o which_o be_v true_a council_n some_o be_v call_v by_o you_o reprobate_n because_o they_o please_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o some_o approve_v but_o our_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o thus_o divide_v nor_o schismatical_a 3_o our_o common_a faith_n be_v still_o the_o same_o and_o its_o rule_n the_o same_o but_o you_o be_v mutable_a by_o new_a addition_n as_o long_a council_n will_v make_v new_a decree_n and_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v when_o you_o have_v all_o and_o your_o faith_n be_v come_v to_o its_o full_a stature_n nay_o and_o your_o decree_n which_o be_v your_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v so_o many_o and_o obscure_a that_o you_o be_v not_o agree_v yourselves_o in_o the_o number_n or_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o 4._o it_o be_v a_o notorious_a truth_n that_o all_o these_o church_n which_o you_o say_v have_v a_o thousand_o profession_n as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o christian_a profession_n so_o do_v less_o differ_v among_o themselves_o than_o your_o seem_o unite_a church_n do_v with_o itself_o whether_o you_o respect_v the_o number_n or_o the_o weight_n of_o difference_n 1._o for_o the_o number_n sint_fw-la libri_fw-la judices_fw-la all_o the_o christian_a world_n beside_o have_v not_o so_o many_o nor_o i_o think_v half_a so_o many_o volume_n of_o controversy_n as_o your_o writer_n have_v write_v against_o one_o another_o as_o far_o as_o be_v come_v to_o the_o notice_n of_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o and_o for_o the_o weight_n 1._o i_o have_v show_v that_o you_o be_v divide_v in_o your_o very_a fundamental_o the_o supremacy_n you_o confess_v here_o that_o your_o church_n be_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v what_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v or_o who_o be_v a_o christian_n some_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n other_o say_v a_o christian_a must_v believe_v in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n 2._o your_o commentator_n differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o of_o text_n of_o god_n own_o word_n 3_o your_o disputer_n about_o grace_n and_o freewill_n accuse_v one_o the_o other_o of_o make_v god_n the_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o deny_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n 4._o your_o moralist_n differ_v about_o many_o instance_n of_o excommunicate_a king_n and_o then_o kill_v they_o and_o of_o the_o pope_n power_n to_o depose_v they_o and_o of_o perjury_n lie_v murder_n adultery_n fornication_n false_a witness_n yea_o about_o love_a god_n himself_o whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o love_v he_o once_o a_o year_n or_o whether_o attrition_n that_o be_v repentance_n from_o bare_a fear_n with_o penance_n may_v not_o serve_v turn_n to_o salvation_n with_o abundance_n such_o and_o we_o confess_v that_o other_o christian_n have_v their_o difference_n and_o what_o wonder_v while_o they_o be_v so_o imperfect_a in_o knowledge_n and_o all_o grace_n and_o now_o if_o concord_n or_o discord_n must_v tell_v we_o who_o tradition_n or_o judgement_n be_v most_o regardable_a let_v the_o impartial_a judge_n whether_o the_o mo●…●…egardable_a tradition_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o against_o you_o and_o whether_o your_o reproach_v they_o for_o discord_n condemn_v not_o yourselves_o much_o more_o than_o they_o if_o a_o subject_n shall_v style_v himself_o the_o king_n vicegerent_n and_o claim_n much_o of_o his_o prerogative_n without_o his_o commission_n and_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v unite_v in_o receive_v and_o obey_v he_o and_o have_v otherwise_o a_o thousand_o contention_n among_o they_o qu._n whether_o these_o or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o more_o and_o better_o unite_v when_o i_o next_o question_v whether_o the_o vulgar_a that_o know_v not_o council_n resolve_v not_o their_o 6._o faith_n into_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o parish-priest_n he_o say_v no._n and_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n be_v but_o the_o mean_n by_o who_o we_o come_v to_o believe_v and_o tell_v we_o that_o else_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n 500_o year_n ago_o etc._n etc._n ans._n but_o if_o they_o will_v be_v content_a with_o ministerial_a teach_n and_o historical_a proof_n of_o thing_n past_a we_o will_v not_o differ_v from_o they_o we_o do_v not_o only_o assert_v these_o as_o well_o as_o they_o but_o we_o say_v that_o as_o we_o have_v sound_a teach_n so_o we_o have_v far_o better_a historical_a tradition_n of_o our_o faith_n than_o that_o which_o depend_v on_o a_o pretend_a fan●…tick_a infallibility_n or_o authority_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o sect_n even_o the_o historical_a tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o of_o many_o of_o the_o enemy_n themselves_o chap._n vi_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o a_o general_z council_n w._n i._n a_o general_n council_n i_o take_v to_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o chief_a prelate_n call_v 1_o convene_v confirm_v by_o those_o who_o have_v sufficient_a spiritual_a authority_n to_o call_v convene_v and_o confirm_v it_o r._n b._n here_o be_v nothing_o still_o but_o fly_v and_o hide_v his_o cause_n be_v such_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o answer_v note_v that_o 1._o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o what_o extent_n it_o must_v be_v at_o all_o whether_o these_o prelate_n must_v be_v send_v from_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o whence_o the_o least_o provincial_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v call_v may_v be_v a_o general_n council_n by_o this_o description_n 2._o he_o tell_v we_o of_o other_o chief_a prelate_n and_o yet_o never_o tell_v what_o sort_n of_o thing_n he_o mean_v by_o chief_a prelate_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n and_o when_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o doubtless_o he_o will_v never_o prove_v nor_o i_o hope_v affirm_v that_o any_o such_o prelate_n be_v of_o christ_n institution_n and_o if_o the_o
on_o it_o but_o a_o ill_a cause_n will_v admit_v of_o no_o defence_n if_o you_o come_v to_o this_o mark_v what_o will_v follow_v even_o that_o million_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o do_v reject_v he_o if_o there_o be_v two_o real_a pope_n there_o be_v two_o real_a church_n and_o therefore_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v universal_a and_o consequent_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o be_v pope_n because_o not_o universal_a bishop_n so_o ill_o do_v such_o forgery_n cohere_v but_o if_o only_a one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o true_a pope_n than_o all_o that_o follow_v the_o other_o reject_v the_o pope_n either_o these_o be_v save_v or_o damn_v if_o save_v than_o man_n that_o reject_v the_o pope_n may_v be_v save_v and_o then_o why_o ask_v you_o we_o where_o be_v a_o church_n that_o reject_v the_o pope_n before_o luther_n when_o you_o tell_v we_o where_o at_o home_n if_o damn_v what_o a_o happiness_n befall_v one_o kingdom_n and_o what_o a_o misery_n the_o other_o by_o the_o title_n or_o no-title_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v it_o all_o france_n and_o that_o party_n or_o germany_n and_o that_o party_n that_o be_v damn_v all_o those_o time_n hell_n have_v a_o great_a harvest_n by_o it_o which_o soever_o it_o be_v and_o it_o be_v pity_n that_o one_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o damn_v so_o many_o nation_n by_o pretend_v that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n and_o methinks_v such_o a_o division_n as_o this_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o proper_a schism_n unless_o he_o will_v be_v so_o jocular_a as_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o proper_a division_n and_o rent_n but_o no_o proper_a schism_n i_o add_v this_o note_n reader_n if_o there_o be_v any_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v true_a schismatic_n according_a 12._o to_o w._n i.'s_n own_o definition_n judge_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o the_o papal_a sect_n for_o it_o be_v they_o that_o condemn_v all_o the_o world_n save_v themselves_o and_o say_v that_o none_o else_o be_v church_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n except_o themselves_o who_o be_v but_o a_o three_o or_o four_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o never_o know_v any_o of_o all_o our_o sectary_n do_v so_o no_o not_o the_o quaker_n themselves_o who_o come_v near_a it_o unless_o perhaps_o the_o seeker_n that_o say_v the_o church_n be_v lose_v but_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o indeed_o they_o separate_v not_o always_o from_o themselves_o though_o they_o do_v from_o all_o other_o no_o more_o do_v any_o other_o sect._n r._n b._n though_o i_o be_o sure_a st._n paul_n call_v it_o schism_n when_o man_n make_v division_n in_o the_o church_n though_o not_o from_o it_o not_o make_v two_o church_n but_o dislocate_a some_o member_n and_o abate_v charity_n and_o cause_v contention_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v peace_n yet_o i_o accept_v your_o continue_a justification_n of_o we_o who_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v tempt_v to_o be_v divider_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v yet_o hate_v to_o be_v divider_n from_o it_o as_o believe_v that_o he_o that_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v also_o separate_a from_o the_o head_n w._n j._n i_o be_o glad_a you_o accept_v of_o something_o at_o the_o last_o upshot_n if_o it_o be_v for_o your_o advantage_n god_n give_v you_o good_a on_o it_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o schism_n take_v in_o a_o large_a sense_n but_o of_o that_o only_a which_o be_v treat_v by_o the_o father_n and_o reckon_v up_o among_o the_o most_o horrid_a sin_n which_o a_o christian_a can_v commit_v and_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n see_v dr._n ham._n of_o schism_n c._n 1._o 2_o 3._o r._n b._n this_o be_v already_o answer_v i_o again_o entreat_v you_o then_o to_o consider_v what_o a_o horrid_a sin_n it_o be_v in_o the_o papal_a sect_n to_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o then_o to_o divert_v their_o conscience_n by_o cry_v out_o of_o schism_n against_o all_o that_o will_v not_o join_v with_o they_o in_o so_o dangerous_a a_o schism_n 2._o and_o i_o humble_o admonish_v those_o protestant_n that_o cry_v out_o schism_n schism_n against_o all_o that_o will_v not_o do_v as_o they_o do_v even_o in_o a_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v indifferent_a and_o other_o account_v a_o heinous_a 13._o sin_n to_o remember_v that_o even_o these_o papist_n be_v so_o moderate_a as_o not_o to_o condemn_v other_o man_n as_o schismatic_n unless_o they_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n and_o i_o hope_v to_o refuse_v the_o tridentiu●…_n symbolical_a oath_n or_o any_o other_o false_a or_o sinful_a covenant_n or_o profession_n be_v not_o to_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o false_a oath_n covenant_n or_o other_o sin_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o christ_n church_n r._n b._n sir_n urgent_a and_o unavoidable_a business_n constrain_v i_o to_o delay_v my_o return_n to_o your_o solution_n 14._o or_o explication_n of_o your_o definition_n till_o this_o june_n 29._o 1660._o when_o you_o desire_v i_o to_o answer_v any_o such_o question_n or_o explain_v any_o doubtful_a passage_n of_o i_o i_o shall_v willing_o do_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o may_v see_v while_o your_o term_n be_v unexplain_v and_o your_o explication_n or_o definition_n so_o insignificant_a how_o fit_a we_o be_v to_o proceed_v any_o further_a till_o we_o better_o understand_v each_o other_o as_o to_o our_o term_n and_o subject_a which_o when_o you_o have_v do_v your_o part_n to_o i_o shall_v glad_o if_o god_n enable_v i_o go_v on_o with_o you_o till_o we_o come_v if_o it_o may_v be_v to_o our_o desire_a issue_n but_o still_o crave_v the_o performance_n of_o the_o double_a task_n you_o be_v engage_v in_o richard_n baxter_n w._n i._o sir_n i_o have_v thus_o far_o endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v your_o expectation_n and_o to_o acquit_v myself_o of_o all_o obligation_n wherein_o i_o have_v seek_v as_o i_o strong_o hope_v first_o god_n eternal_a glory_n and_o in_o the_o next_o place_n your_o eternal_a good_a with_o his_o for_o who_o i_o under_o take_v this_o labour_n and_o of_o all_o these_o who_o attentive_o and_o impartial_o peruse_v this_o treatise_n william_n johnson_n r._n b._n your_o intention_n i_o leave_v to_o yourself_o of_o your_o performance_n and_o my_o answer_n i_o desire_v such_o judge_n as_o you_o describe_v even_o attentive_a and_o impartial_a re●…ders_n but_o o_o how_o rare_a be_v impartiality_n even_o in_o they_o that_o think_v they_o ha●…_n it_o in_o the_o end_n i_o add_v a_o appendix_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n of_o they_o that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a chunrch_n without_o pastor_n no_o pastor_n without_o ordination_n and_o no_o ordination_n but_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o when_o we_o break_v off_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o interrupt_v our_o succession_n which_o can_v be_v repair_v but_o by_o a_o return_n to_o they_o to_o this_o i_o give_v a_o full_a answer_n of_o which_o w._n i._n take_v no_o notice_n last_o i_o conclude_v with_o a_o address_n to_o himself_o in_o which_o i_o give_v he_o the_o reason_n why_o i_o publish_v our_o write_n and_o also_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o successive_o be_v the_o same_o from_o the_o apostle_n much_o less_o receive_v no_o corruption_n which_o i_o prove_v first_o because_o it_o have_v since_o receive_v a_o new_a essential_a part_n even_o a_o pretend_a vice-christ_n or_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 2._o because_o it_o have_v have_v frequent_a and_o long_a intercision_n in_o that_o essential_a head_n 3._o because_o it_o have_v have_v new_a essential_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n to_o all_o this_o he_o give_v no_o answer_n part_n ii_o richard_n baxter_n vindication_n of_o the_o continue_a visibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n in_o answer_n to_o william_n johnson_n alias_o terret_n reply_n call_v by_o he_o novelty_n repress_v the_o preface_n i_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o suppose_v that_o if_o i_o shall_v make_v this_o book_n as_o long_o as_o it_o must_v be_v if_o i_o repeat_v and_o answer_v all_o the_o word_n of_o w._n i._n it_o will_v frustrate_v my_o write_n it_o by_o discourage_v 1_o most_o reader_n who_o leisure_n and_o patience_n be_v as_o short_a as_o i_o therefore_o i_o purpose_v to_o cull_v out_o all_o which_o i_o take_v to_o seem_v his_o real_a strength_n and_o of_o any_o importance_n to_o the_o understand_a reader_n and_o to_o omit_v the_o vagary_n and_o particular_o where_o he_o and_o i_o differ_v about_o the_o word_n or_o sense_n of_o any_o father_n or_o council_n what_o need_v i_o more_o than_o to_o leave_v that_o matter_n to_o the_o perusal_n of_o the_o reader_n who_o can_v
receive_v by_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n as_o such_o whereas_o now_o we_o perceive_v that_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o church_n though_o they_o know_v it_o not_o to_o be_v papal_a and_o we_o think_v it_o must_v have_v be_v receive_v as_o from_o a_o general_n council_n or_o the_o church_n universal_a but_o it_o seem_v here_o it_o be_v needful_a but_o that_o it_o be_v from_o their_o particular_a pastor_n 4._o by_o this_o it_o seem_v that_o there_o be_v other_o pastor_n that_o must_v be_v believe_v receive_v and_o obey_v before_o the_o pope_n and_o subjection_n to_o they_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o churchmembership_n when_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o no_o such_o necessity_n how_o the_o pope_n will_v take_v this_o we_o know_v not_o but_o 5._o it_o leave_v we_o to_o new_a doubt_n as_o hard_o as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n how_o to_o know_v that_o such_o indeed_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n before_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o a_o pope_n and_o how_o to_o know_v which_o be_v they_o we_o perceive_v now_o that_o implicit_a faith_n be_v not_o necessary_o the_o believe_a pope_n or_o council_n but_o the_o believe_v those_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n qu._n 1._o but_o can_v we_o know_v that_o christ_n institute_v they_o before_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o christ_n or_o that_o he_o be_v true_a christ_n q_o 2._o can_v you_o be_v true_a pastor_n without_o derivation_n from_o and_o dependence_n on_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v so_o know_v by_o the_o people_n o_o that_o you_o will_v but_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o tell_v we_o how_o and_o then_o q._n 3._o tell_v we_o why_o the_o same_o people_n may_v not_o take_v protestant_a armenian_a abassine_a bishop_n or_o presbyter_n for_o true_a pastor_n by_o the_o same_o proof_n q._n 4._o and_o do_v not_o the_o proof_n or_o knowledge_n that_o man_n be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n without_o know_v that_o they_o have_v ordination_n jurisdiction_n mission_n or_o confirmation_n as_o you_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o also_o prove_v that_o quoad_fw-la esse_fw-la man_n may_v be_v cur_n true_a pastor_n without_o any_o of_o these_o relation_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o esse_fw-la rei_fw-la be_v presuppose_v to_o the_o proof_n and_o knowledge_n 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o relation_n the_o fundamentum_fw-la enter_v the_o definition_n i_o conclude_v that_o be_v myself_o unfeigned_o and_o earnest_o desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o appoint_a church-monarch_n of_o government_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o dwell_v on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v diligent_o read_v what_o you_o and_o abu●…_n 〈◊〉_d more_o have_v write_v for_o it_o i_o profess_v that_o i_o never_o yet_o hear_v or_o see_v any_o proposal_n of_o it_o nor_o yet_o of_o abundance_n of_o your_o doctrine_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v my_o understanding_n of_o it_o but_o much_o to_o convince_v i_o of_o the_o contrary_n and_o i_o may_v suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o case_n of_o most_o who_o need_v as_o clear_a evidence_n as_o i_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v none_o of_o we_o by_o your_o concession_n oblige_v either_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la or_o praecepti_fw-la to_o believe_v you_o or_o to_o be_v your_o subject_n and_o i_o confess_v i_o like_o the_o preach_n of_o these_o man_n who_o labour_n be_v only_o to_o subject_a man_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o their_o lawful_a magistrate_n and_o domestic_a governor_n and_o to_o the_o teaching-conduct_a believe_v of_o those_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n better_a than_o they_o that_o make_v it_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o make_v all_o man_n on_o earth_n their_o subject_n and_o yet_o teacher_n we_o acknowledge_v necessary_a to_o our_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v not_o first_o necessary_a to_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v send_v by_o christ_n before_o we_o believe_v in_o christ._n but_o 1._o the_o first_o messenger_n apostle_n do_v at_o once_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o send_v they_o to_o witness_v his_o resurrection_n miracle_n and_o work_n and_o to_o preach_v his_o gospel_n and_o the_o tongue_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n by_o which_o they_o prove_v it_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o both_o at_o once_o but_o principal_o of_o the_o former_a for_o if_o a_o un-called_n preacher_n have_v wrought_v a_o miracle_n it_o will_v have_v prove_v his_o doctrine_n but_o not_o his_o call_v 2._o but_o ordinary_a preacher_n now_o give_v we_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v heretofore_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n the_o doctrine_n self-evidencing_a divinity_n as_o it_o have_v the_o impress_n of_o god_n power_n wisdom_n and_o love_n his_o holiness_n justice_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o antecedent_n prophecy_n fulfil_v and_o the_o concomitant_a and_o subsequent_a miracle_n and_o the_o continue_a seal_n of_o the_o sanctify_a spirit_n in_o all_o believer_n and_o by_o these_o we_o be_v first_o draw_v by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n before_o we_o believe_v that_o he_o send_v these_o man_n to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n yea_o without_o believe_v they_o ofttimes_o to_o be_v our_o pastor_n or_o any_o pastor_n at_o all_o we_o detest_v those_o self-preacher_n that_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o to_o be_v our_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o receive_v they_o before_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o receive_v he_o and_o we_o detest_v that_o false_a doctrine_n that_o say_v that_o a_o layman_n may_v not_o convert_v soul_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n may_v not_o by_o his_o open_v that_o word_n win_v soul_n that_o know_v not_o yet_o what_o ministry_n christ_n have_v institute_v to_o my_o instance_n of_o the_o iberian_o convert_v by_o a_o maid_n and_o the_o indian_n by_o frumentius_n 13._o and_o edesius_n he_o answer_v 1._o that_o he_o can_v prove_v the_o papacy_n preach_v to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o i_o can_v justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o or_o any_o other_o parcicular_a point_n of_o our_o doctrine_n 2._o we_o must_v both_o say_v that_o all_o important_a truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o and_o till_o you_o have_v evince_v this_o of_o the_o supremacy_n to_o be_v none_o of_o those_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v it_o be_v sufficient_o declare_v to_o they_o 3._o explicate_v the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v suppose_v they_o be_v tell_v it_o consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o people_n unite_v and_o that_o they_o must_v obey_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o which_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n be_v implicit_o include_v answ._n 1._o our_o doctrine_n as_o you_o call_v it_o be_v christianity_n and_o i_o can_v prove_v nothing_o preach_v but_o what_o make_v they_o christian_n which_o you_o confess_v may_v be_v without_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o a_o brave_a argument_n all_o important_a truth_n be_v preach_v ergo_fw-la you_o must_v prove_v that_o this_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o 1._o all_o important_a truth_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v preach_v by_o those_o two_o layman_n and_o by_o a_o maid_n all_o essential_a truth_n we_o may_v suppose_v preach_v or_o else_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christian_n we_o hear_v before_o that_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o that_o every_o truth_n of_o continue_a institution_n be_v not_o only_o important_a but_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n whence_o you_o may_v infer_v in_o your_o way_n that_o the_o maid_n and_o the_o two_o layman_n have_v preach_v every_o such_o truth_n and_o leave_v not_o one_o out_o or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n and_o church_n 2._o it_o be_v your_o part_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v such_o a_o important_a truth_n and_o not_o i_o to_o prove_v the_o negative_a which_o yet_o i_o have_v oft_o and_o full_o do_v 3._o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o at_o first_o in_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o old_a copy_n show_v and_o baptism_n be_v administer_v without_o mention_v that_o article_n 4._o if_o hold_v that_o people_n must_v obey_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n will_v serve_v than_o we_o be_v all_o right_a 〈◊〉_d if_o this_o be_v a_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o papacy_n we_o be_v all_o papist_n yea_o perhaps_o mahometan_n and_o he●…thens_n be_v papist_n too_o by_o such_o a_o belief_n to_o 〈◊〉_d instance_n from_o act._n 2._o he_o say_v 1._o who_o can_v tell_v whether_o peter_n tell_v they_o not_o of_o his_o suprem●…_n 〈◊〉_d 2._o they_o address_v their_o speech_n first_o
to_o he_o etc._n etc._n 14._o answ._n 1._o who_o can_v tell_v that_o peter_n do_v preach_v his_o own_o supremacy_n i_o prove_v he_o do_v not_o because_o if_o he_o do_v it_o be_v as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v or_o not_o if_o not_o he_o preach_v it_o not_o among_o thing_n necessary_a if_o yea_o then_o have_v he_o so_o preach_v it_o that_o text_n or_o some_o other_o will_v have_v mention_v it_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o some_o apostle_n will_v have_v express_v it_o on_o record_n which_o they_o have_v not_o do_v yea_o have_v deny_v it_o 2._o those_o that_o paul_n preach_v to_o act._n 16._o and_o other_o place_n address_v their_o speech_n first_o to_o he_o but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o therefore_o he_o be_v governor_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n how_o unhappy_a be_v great_a conqueror_n that_o must_v fight_v many_o bloody_a battle_n to_o win_v one_o kingdom_n of_o another_o man_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o without_o a_o blow_n or_o a_o word_n of_o good_a reason_n can_v hope_v by_o such_o gross_a sophism_n as_o these_o to_o get_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n to_o my_o instance_n of_o those_o convert_v by_o the_o english_a and_o dutch_a in_o the_o indies_n he_o bid_v i_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n 15._o answ._n they_o that_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n the_o creed_n and_o in_o general_a the_o truth_n of_o all_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o be_v devote_v to_o god_n by_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o teach_v to_o conform_v their_o desire_n to_o the_o lord's-prayer_n and_o their_o practice_n to_o the_o decalogue_n to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a and_o in_o love_n to_o god_n and_o man_n and_o in_o good_a work_n and_o hope_v of_o heaven_n be_v instruct_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n but_o such_o be_v they_o in_o question_n etc._n etc._n do_v you_o so_o oft_o say_v that_o less_o than_o all_o the_o creed_n be_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la to_o be_v believe_v and_o many_o of_o you_o not_o so_o much_o as_o christ_n himself_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o all_o that_o protestant_n teach_v the_o true_a faith_n o_o impartiality_n next_o to_o my_o instance_n of_o the_o abassian_a empire_n he_o bid_v i_o also_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v orthodox_n catholic_n christian_n answ._n 1._o i_o must_v first_o know_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o orthodox_n and_o catholic_n which_o your_o ill_a 16._o faculty_n of_o expound_v make_v i_o despair_v of_o if_o by_o orthodox_n you_o mean_v such_o as_o have_v no_o error_n i_o can_v prove_v it_o but_o it_o be_v shame_n for_o such_o erroneous_a man_n as_o you_o to_o demand_v it_o but_o if_o you_o mean_v but_o such_o as_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o much_o more_o the_o former_a argument_n join_v with_o all_o just_a testimony_n of_o they_o such_o as_o you_o have_v in_o damianus_n a_o go_v alvarez_n godignus_n etc._n etc._n prove_v it_o so_o if_o by_o catholic_n you_o mean_v a_o papist_n i_o can_v prove_v it_o but_o the_o eontrary_a but_o if_o you_o mean_v part_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n it_o be_v prove_v as_o afore_o note_v here_o what_o vafritious_a man_n these_o be_v that_o save_v or_o ●…amn_v empire_n to_o and_o fro_o as_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o argue_v require_v when_o we_o prove_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v twice_o or_o thrice_o as_o great_a as_o all_o the_o papal_a church_n then_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o greek_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n be_v of_o their_o mind_n and_o they_o feign_v that_o the_o greek_n armenian_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n be_v all_o subject_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o have_v submit_v to_o he_o godignus_n write_v to_o confute_v one_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o affirm_v the_o abassine_n to_o be_v for_o the_o pope_n but_o when_o their_o cause_n bid_v they_o say_v otherwise_o than_o we_o be_v challenge_v to_o prove_v they_o catholic_n christians_o and_o orthodox_n have_v you_o put_v i_o to_o prove_v the_o papist_n such_o you_o have_v put_v i_o hard_o to_o it_o our_o next_o point_n be_v of_o the_o visibility_n of_o christ_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o say_v p._n 65._o 17._o he_o be_v most_o certain_o a_o invisible_a pastor_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n for_o though_o his_o person_n may_v be_v see_v there_o yet_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o pastorship_n consist_v only_o in_o spiritual_a influence_n and_o internal_a grace_n can_v be_v see_v by_o any_o corporal_a eye_n whatsoever_o therefore_o as_o a_o pastor_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n he_o be_v whole_o invisible_a so_o you_o put_v a_o visible_a body_n without_o a_o visible_a head_n all_o that_o be_v visible_a in_o the_o pastoral_n function_n be_v perform_v by_o visible_a pastor_n and_o all_o that_o be_v invisible_a by_o our_o saviour_n so_o you_o by_o a_o strange_a piece_n of_o novelty_n constitute_v a_o visible_a body_n without_o a_o visible_a head_n necessary_a you_o destroy_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o frame_v a_o monster_n answ._n what_o abundance_n of_o heresy_n must_v i_o charge_v on_o such_o man_n if_o i_o judge_v they_o according_a to_o their_o term_n and_o rigour_n of_o judge_v 1._o christ_n as_o a_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v here_o deny_v whereas_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o that_o he_o be_v visus_n but_o visibilis_fw-la that_o we_o assert_v 2._o and_o he_o be_v see_v till_o about_o thirty_o three_o year_n of_o age_n on_o earrh_n he_o be_v see_v to_o do_v miracle_n suffer_v rise_v ascend_v 3._o he_o be_v see_v of_o paul_n and_o stephen_n after_o his_o ascension_n 4._o the_o poor_a scatter_a flock_n on_o earth_n be_v but_o a_o handful_n to_o the_o church_n triumphant_a that_o see_v he_o still_o in_o heaven_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o body_n 5._o he_o will_v come_v visible_a in_o glory_n to_o judgement_n 6._o every_o believer_n after_o a_o few_o hasty_a hour_n pass_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o he_o 7._o and_o we_o shall_v all_o see_v he_o in_o heaven_n for_o ever_o compare_v this_o now_o with_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o great_a earthly_a monarch_n who_o be_v never_o see_v to_o the_o thousand_o person_n of_o their_o empire_n and_o rare_o to_o any_o but_o their_o courtier_n and_o some_o of_o they_o rare_o to_o the_o most_o of_o they_o but_o to_o some_o very_o few_o and_o quick_o die_v and_o be_v see_v here_o no_o more_o and_o yet_o may_v not_o christ_n be_v call_v a_o visible_a head_n and_o yet_o we_o say_v but_o that_o he_o be_v visible_a in_o tantum_fw-la and_o not_o everywhere_o nor_o to_o every_o one_o 2._o but_o it_o be_v not_o his_o person_n that_o he_o say_v be_v invisible_a but_o worse_a than_o that_o it_o be_v the_o exercise_n of_o his_o pastorship_n which_o he_o erroneous_o that_o i_o say_v not_o heretical_o affirm_v to_o consist_v only_o in_o spiritual_a influx_n and_o internal_a grace_n so_o that_o here_o 1._o he_o deny_v all_o christ_n visible_a teach_n and_o government_n while_o he_o be_v on_o earth_n be_v his_o word_n to_o be_v strict_o understand_v and_o all_o his_o mission_n and_o commission_v of_o his_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n 2._o he_o deny_v all_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o be_v christ_n visible_a doctrine_n law_n and_o promise_n and_o so_o the_o visible_a exercise_n of_o his_o office_n as_o the_o king_n law_n be_v of_o he_o 3._o he_o deny_v all_o christ_n visible_a administration_n by_o his_o officer_n prince_n and_o pastor_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n that_o christ_n do_v it_o not_o because_o they_o do_v it_o whereas_o it_o be_v he_o that_o visible_o rule_v as_o to_o the_o effect_n here_o question_v by_o they_o as_o it_o be_v the_o visible_a government_n of_o the_o king_n which_o be_v exercise_v all_o abroad_o the_o kingdom_n by_o his_o command_n 4._o he_o deny_v christ_n visible_a mercy_n provision_n protection_n deliverance_n of_o many_o sort_n which_o be_v all_o part_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o office_n 5._o he_o deny_v all_o the_o visible_a miracle_n which_o christ_n have_v wrought_v by_o other_o whilst_o yet_o their_o church_n so_o boast_v of_o they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v their_o very_a foundation_n as_o i_o show_v out_o of_o knot_n against_o chillingworth_n who_o ultimate_o resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o they_o and_o they_o will_v have_v we_o think_v that_o they_o be_v costant_a thing_n if_o you_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o see_v here_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o christ_n person_n now_o who_o visibility_n he_o speak_v of_o but_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o office_n 6._o he_o deny_v all_o the_o visible_a punishment_n which_o christ_n himself_o inflict_v on_o his_o sin_v people_n and_o on_o his_o enemy_n though_o they_o be_v many_o and_o notorious_a and_o as_o god_n be_v know_v by_o the_o
judgement_n which_o he_o execute_v psal._n 9_o so_o all_o thing_n and_o power_n now_o be_v give_v unto_o christ_n and_o he_o judge_v the_o world_n as_o lord_n of_o all_o for_o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n joh._n 5._o 22._o 7._o he_o deny_v christ_n final_a visible_a judgement_n if_o he_o hold_v strict_o to_o his_o word_n that_o the_o exercise_n of_o christ_n pastorship_n be_v only_o in_o spiritual_a influence_n and_o internal_a grace_n if_o you_o say_v that_o some_o of_o my_o instance_n be_v not_o of_o his_o pastoral_n but_o his_o regal_a office_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v but_o some_o that_o you_o so_o except_v 2._o it_o be_v a_o mistake_n because_o his_o pastoral_n and_o regal_a office_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o indeed_o not_o two_o office_n but_o two_o inadequate_a metaphorical_a conception_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n to_o provide_v food_n for_o his_o flock_n to_o govern_v they_o to_o fetch_v they_o home_o and_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o destroy_v the_o wolf_n he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v visible_a be_v do_v by_o visible_a pastor_n and_o all_o that_o be_v invisible_a by_o christ_n in_o the_o pastoral_n function_n as_o if_o christ_n do_v nothing_o which_o they_o do_v or_o no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v and_o he_o reproach_v christ_n church_n as_o be_v a_o monster_n unless_o it_o have_v some_o other_o visible_a head_n like_o cardinal_n bertrand_n see_v his_o word_n in_o his_o book_n in_o biblioth_n patrum_fw-la that_o say_v god_n have_v not_o be_v wise_a if_o he_o have_v not_o make_v one_o universal_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o when_o we_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o a_o mere_a humane_a visible_a church-governour_n over_o all_o the_o round_a earth_n be_v impossible_a and_o such_o power_n never_o be_v depute_v by_o christ_n to_o any_o and_o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n never_o ow_v or_o do_v own_o such_o will_v it_o not_o then_o follow_v that_o his_o reproach_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o government_n be_v unjust_a and_o rash_a and_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o earth_n as_o god_n kingdom_n which_o christ_n also_o be_v the_o king_n of_o be_v a_o monster_n be_v a_o visible_a body_n unless_o it_o have_v one_o mere_a humane_a visible_a head_n be_v not_o man_n as_o man_n and_o governable_a by_o the_o sword_n as_o visible_a as_o man_n as_o christian_n and_o governable_a by_o the_o word_n and_o keys_n if_o so_o which_o be_v undeniable_a why_o be_v the_o christian_a world_n any_o more_o a_o monster_n without_o a_o monarch_n bishop_n than_o the_o humane_a world_n without_o a_o monarch_n king_n but_o pag._n 66_o 67._o he_o ask_v whether_o christ_n perform_v immediate_o any_o visible_a action_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o church_n and_o say_v man_n will_v expect_v that_o i_o show_v that_o christ_n not_o in_o his_o person_n but_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o pastoral_a headship_n work_v visible_o by_o himself_o answ._n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o person_n be_v visibility_n that_o you_o require_v but_o the_o action_n that_o be_v consider_v either_o as_o it_o be_v agentis_fw-la or_o as_o in_o pass●…_n in_o the_o receiver_n the_o former_a be_v see_v if_o ever_o only_o when_o it_o be_v the_o see_v mo●…us_o of_o a_o body_n if_o the_o latter_a i_o have_v name_v you_o divers_a visible_a act_n of_o christ._n but_o why_o must_v immediate_a come_v in_o do_v not_o my_o hand_n write_v visible_o unless_o i_o do_v it_o without_o a_o pen_n how_o little_a government_n do_v great_a emperor_n exercise_n immediate_o in_o all_o their_o empire_n even_o none_o in_o the_o far_o great_a part_n in_o all_o their_o life_n but_o give_v out_o their_o law_n and_o mandate_n to_o other_o what_o government_n have_v your_o pope_n exercise_v immediate_o in_o abassia_n armenia_n tartary_n persia_n yea_o or_o mexico_n much_o less_o at_o the_o terra_fw-la australis_fw-la incognita_fw-la and_o all_o that_o side_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o lactantius_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n deny_v he_o confess_v that_o he_o cite_v not_o ephes._n 4._o to_o prove_v the_o papacy_n but_o successive_a pastor_n reader_n think_v serious_o 1._o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o a_o invisible_a head_n and_o his_o church_n a_o monster_n by_o this_o man_n rule_n do_v he_o rule_v all_o his_o church_n immediate_o or_o by_o other_o if_o by_o other_o do_v not_o christ_n do_v so_o and_o better_a and_o be_v pope_n zachary_n the_o visible_a head_n at_o the_o antipode_n when_o he_o command_v boniface_n to_o excommunicate_a vigilius_n for_o hold_v such_o a_o world_n under_o we_o as_o we_o call_v the_o antipode_n and_o be_v this_o pope_n a_o capable_a head_n of_o all_o the_o world_n that_o deny_v the_o very_a be_v of_o they_o and_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o it_o o_o what_o a_o pastor_n or_o apostle_n be_v this_o that_o excommunicate_v man_n for_o affirm_v the_o existence_n of_o the_o charge_n which_o he_o undertake_v the_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n second-chapter_n whereas_o w._n i._o will_v persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v first_o incumbent_n on_o we_o to_o prove_v where_o there_o have_v 1_o be_v a_o church_n in_o all_o age_n without_o the_o roman_a papacy_n i_o first_o evidence_v that_o it_o be_v incumbent_n on_o they_o as_o have_v the_o affirmative_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v be_v head_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o all_o age_n for_o 1._o our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o christianity_n as_o such_o and_o this_o they_o confess_v have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n and_o churches_n profess_v it_o so_o that_o all_o our_o religion_n be_v past_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o which_o be_v still_o to_o be_v note_v we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v not_o deny_v who_o deny_v that_o there_o have_v be_v christian_a church_n but_o it_o be_v their_o addition_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v deny_v power_n by_o we_o and_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o they_o according_a to_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o disputation_n 2._o and_o the_o denial_n of_o their_o addition_n be_v the_o renunciative_a consequence_n and_o no_o direct_a and_o proper_a part_n of_o our_o positive_a religion_n true_a faith_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o renunciation_n of_o all_o error_n contrary_a to_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n the_o one_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v define_v the_o other_o in_o particular_n have_v no_o bound_n i_o can_v soon_o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o general_a that_o i_o deny_v any_o other_o but_o if_o i_o will_v undertake_v to_o name_v they_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v as_o god_n and_o say_v e._n g._n satan_n jupiter_n sol_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o god_n i_o can_v never_o know_v when_o i_o have_v do_v and_o this_o be_v but_o a_o consequent_a of_o my_o faith_n so_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o mahomet_n amida_n zachea_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o saviour_n now_o if_o any_o will_v bid_v i_o prove_v where_o there_o have_v be_v church_n in_o all_o age_n that_o do_v renounce_v arrianism_n macedonianism_n nestorian_n eutychian_o monotheli●…es_n etc._n etc._n i_o can_v prove_v that_o any_o do_v express_o renounce_v these_o before_o they_o be_v know_v in_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o christianity_n be_v the_o same_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o change_n before_o and_o after_o so_o w._n i_n demand_n upon_o his_o plea_n of_o present_a possession_n be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o man_n of_o seventy_o year_n of_o age_n which_o be_v now_o gray-headed_a and_o lame_a be_v ever_o so_o or_o the_o church_n which_o now_o honour_v st._n martin_n st._n thomas_n aquinas_n as_o saint_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o you_o can_v show_v we_o that_o your_o church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n so_o honour_v st._n martin_n etc._n etc._n you_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n what_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o church_n that_o keep_v easter-day_n as_o now_o we_o do_v and_o christmas_n day_n on_o the_o 25_o of_o december_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o you_o must_v prove_v that_o your_o church_n have_v ever_o do_v so_o can_v they_o prove_v their_o papacy_n in_o the_o empire_n as_o old_a it_o will_v have_v the_o same_o answer_n viz._n it_o be_v but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o whole_a that_o keep_v easter_n and_o christmas_n as_o we_o do_v now_o for_o one_o part_n keep_v easter_n on_o another_o day_n till_o the_o nicene_n council_n end_v that_o controversy_n in_o the_o east_n and_o christmas-day_n
must_v i_o tell_v you_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o foreign_a land_n be_v this_o necessary_a to_o know_v a_o papist_n can_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o man_n be_v papist_n that_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vice-christ_n unless_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o be_v molinist_n or_o dominican_n franciscan_n benedictines_n jesuit_n jansenist_n etc._n etc._n their_o profession_n of_o christianity_n be_v notorious_a if_o you_o can_v prove_v they_o no_o christian_n do_v i_o suppose_v that_o one_o of_o twenty_o thousand_o of_o they_o never_o study_v the_o eutychian_a or_o nestorian_a controversy_n any_o more_o than_o those_o christian_n that_o die_v before_o these_o name_n and_o man_n be_v bear_v and_o i_o suppose_v that_o when_o these_o name_n come_v first_o up_o one_o pastor_n of_o a_o hundred_o may_v side_n with_o one_o of_o these_o sect_n which_o the_o age_n follow_v little_o mind_v as_o to_o any_o considerable_a number_n and_o i_o suppose_v that_o some_o that_o defend_v eutyches_n and_o nestorius_n know_v not_o what_o the_o heresy_n be_v and_o err_v not_o so_o gross_o as_o those_o jesuit_n do_v about_o murder_n adultery_n perjury_n etc._n etc._n who_o montaltus_n and_o the_o jesuit_n moral_n describe_v nor_o your_o common_a doctor_n cite_v by_o mr._n clarkson_n no_o nor_o so_o bad_a as_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n constance_n and_o basil_n say_v your_o pope_n have_v do_v nor_o as_o other_o of_o you_o say_v those_o council_n do_v no_o nor_o as_o the_o council_n at_o the_o lateran_n do_v in_o decree_a the_o extermination_n of_o all_o that_o you_o call_v heretic_n and_o the_o deposition_n of_o prince_n that_o will_v not_o exterminate_v they_o and_o the_o disoblige_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n but_o if_o this_o argue_v of_o you_o be_v good_a suppose_v it_o use_v with_o yourselves_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o you_o profess_v yourselves_o christian_n and_o papist_n tell_v we_o what_o other_o opinion_n you_o be_v of_o or_o else_o how_o can_v we_o know_v that_o you_o be_v christian_n but_o we_o be_v ashamed_a of_o such_o method_n when_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n bind_v all_o man_n beyond_o their_o profession_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v no_o traitor_n no_o thief_n fornicator_n liar_n etc._n etc._n then_o i_o may_v yield_v that_o man_n profess_v christianity_n must_v prove_v further_a that_o they_o be_v no_o heretic_n or_o invalidate_v not_o their_o own_o profession_n but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o then_o grant_v you_o that_o any_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v this_o but_o themselves_o how_o can_v i_o prove_v such_o negative_n of_o million_o in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n if_o they_o can_v prove_v it_o of_o themselves_o call_v they_o to_o do_v it_o if_o you_o must_v have_v such_o negative_n prove_v but_o see_v that_o you_o call_v they_o one_o by_o one_o for_o my_o neighbour_n error_n prove_v not_o i_o if_o i_o be_v put_v to_o take_v you_o and_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o england_n for_o no_o christian_n unless_o i_o can_v prove_v you_o to_o be_v no_o sectary_n no_o heretic_n no_o traitor_n no_o drunkard_n perjure_a fornicator_n etc._n etc._n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o i_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o any_o one_o of_o you_o this_o be_v one_o difference_n it_o seem_v between_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o papal_a church-government_n and_o christ_n and_o perhaps_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o rack_n and_o torment_n of_o the_o inquisition_n to_o make_v man_n confess_v what_o opinion_n they_o be_v of_o the_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n three_o chapter_n he_o begin_v that_o which_o he_o call_v his_o three_o chapter_n pap_n 88_o 89._o with_o again_o repeat_v his_o 1_o question_n thus_o be_v they_o all_o unite_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o unity_n of_o external_a communion_n without_o those_o two_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v unite_v in_o christ._n answ._n i_o be_o afraid_a these_o repetition_n will_v tire_v the_o reader_n i_o have_v prove_v they_o unite_v in_o one_o faith_n even_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o in_o one_o external_n communion_n in_o much_o more_o of_o it_o than_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n viz._n in_o one_o baptism_n the_o lord_n supper_n prayer_n praise_n thanksgiving_n confession_n of_o sin_n preach_v and_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n etc._n etc._n without_o differ_v in_o any_o thing_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o if_o by_o the_o ambiguous_a word_n of_o unity_n of_o external_n communion_n you_o shall_v mean_v either_o that_o they_o must_v meet_v all_o in_o one_o place_n or_o be_v all_o under_o one_o pastor_n these_o you_o before_o disow_v and_o if_o you_o mean_v that_o they_o must_v all_o have_v one_o book_n of_o liturgy_n you_o know_v that_o so_o have_v not_o your_o roman_a church_n of_o above_o 600_o year_n at_o least_o nor_o yet_o the_o eastern_a church_n nor_o any_o considerable_a number_n of_o they_o every_o bishop_n make_v his_o lyturgie_n or_o prayer_n as_o he_o see_v meet_v if_o you_o mean_v that_o they_o must_v have_v no_o difference_n in_o any_o word_n or_o ceremony_n and_o that_o all_o be_v of_o several_a church_n or_o half_o of_o no_o church_n who_o differ_v about_o meat_n drink_n day_n etc._n etc._n i_o shall_v not_o believe_v you_o while_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n rom._n 14._o and_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 8._o jam._n 3._o etc._n etc._n nor_o till_o i_o renounce_v humanity_n or_o believe_v that_o man_n of_o several_a complexion_n stature_n or_o language_n may_v not_o yet_o be_v all_o true_o man_n they_o that_o bring_v it_o to_o that_o that_o i_o be_o no_o christian_n if_o i_o eat_v not_o fish_n in_o lent_n rather_o than_o flesh_n may_v unchristian_a i_o next_o if_o i_o eat_v not_o my_o bread_n without_o cheese_n or_o my_o cheese_n without_o bread_n or_o if_o i_o take_v not_o the_o pope_n for_o my_o apothecary_n or_o physician_n lay_v by_o the_o sword_n and_o rack_n and_o fire_n and_o the_o world_n will_v soon_o laugh_v down_o your_o arrogant_a tyranny_n i_o demand_v his_o proof_n that_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o papist_n or_o almost_o one_o church_n of_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n for_o 400_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o the_o oration_n of_o pope_n celestine_n be_v 2._o legate_n in_o the_o council_n at_o ephesus_n prove_v it_o and_o though_o that_o council_n be_v celebrate_v 430_o yet_o in_o a_o moral_a consideration_n that_o pass_v for_o 400_o etc._n etc._n answ._n what_o can_v the_o jesuit_n moral_n make_v good_a by_o they_o 430_o year_n be_v within_o the_o 400._o and_o by_o they_o a_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n go_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n but_o what_o be_v that_o speech_n itself_o first_o note_v that_o the_o council_n be_v call_v by_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n and_o not_o by_o celestine_n send_v his_o literae_fw-la augustales_fw-la to_o all_o the_o metropolitan_o command_v they_o to_o appear_v at_o ephesus_n 2._o that_o cyril_n and_o not_o celestine_n be_v send_v to_o at_o first_o for_o help_v from_o the_o church_n at_o constantinople_n 3._o that_o cyril_n preside_v and_o whereas_o the_o papist_n feign_v that_o he_o do_v it_o as_o the_o pope_n substitute_n the_o council_n letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n express_v that_o the_o pope_n three_o legate_n be_v the_o man_n that_o represent_v his_o person_n bin._n p._n 756._o and_o that_o they_o commend_v to_o theodosius_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o as_o the_o signification_n of_o common_a consent_n 4._o and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v these_o word_n of_o philip_n a_o roman_a presbyter_n be_v all_o that_o this_o great_a boast_n be_v of_o thank_v they_o for_o so_o receive_v the_o pope_n letter_n non_fw-la enim_fw-la ignara_fw-la est_fw-la vestra_fw-la beatitudo_fw-la totius_fw-la fidei_fw-la caeterorumque_fw-la omnium_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la caput_fw-la b●…atum_fw-la apostolum_n petrum_fw-la extitisse_fw-la and_o after_o that_o peter_n the_o foundation_n and_o head_n have_v the_o key_n and_o live_v and_o judge_v in_o his_o successor_n but_o he_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o other_o apostle_n also_o have_v the_o key_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o these_o high_a word_n speak_v to_o keep_v up_o the_o pope_n greatness_n in_o the_o empire_n be_v but_o to_o maintain_v his_o place_n in_o council_n and_o never_o speak_v to_o the_o church_n without_o the_o empire_n nor_o such_o power_n over_o they_o claim_v by_o he_o and_o the_o council_n decree_n be_v pass_v before_o these_o legate_n come_v by_o who_o consent_n cyril_n be_v glad_a to_o strengthen_v his_o party_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o joh._n antioch_n nestorius_n etc._n etc._n and_o do_v not_o hesichius_n say_v as_o much_o of_o
necessary_a to_o make_v we_o member_n answ._n as_o the_o union_n of_o king_n and_o subject_n make_v one_o kingdom_n so_o the_o union_n of_o christ_n and_o christian_n make_v one_o church_n and_o we_o call_v none_o christian_n that_o profess_v not_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n and_o their_o seed_n but_o he_o say_v the_o question_n be_v how_o a_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_a can_v be_v a_o true_a christian._n answ._n ambiguous_a word_n be_v the_o game_n of_o deceiver_n and_o to_o open_v the_o ambiguity_n mar_v their_o cause_n the_o word_n heretic_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o signify_v either_o one_o that_o deny_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n or_o one_o that_o only_o deny_v a_o integral_a part_n the_o former_a be_v no_o christian_n the_o latter_a may_v §_o 13._o but_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o no_o heretic_n be_v a_o christian_n or_o have_v true_a faith_n viz._n whoever_o have_v true_a faith_n believe_v the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o that_o be_v certain_a but_o so_o do_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v very_o false_a of_o both_o sort_n of_o heretic_n 1._o you_o call_v the_o luciferian_o the_o novatian_o etc._n etc._n heretic_n and_o who_o can_v see_v reason_n to_o doubt_v but_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o all_o that_o god_n say_v be_v true_a 2._o overdo_v be_v undo_v as_o you_o be_v the_o great_a cause_n of_o schism_n by_o overdo_v as_o against_o schism_n so_o you_o will_v justify_v almost_o all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n by_o your_o blind_a over_n as_o against_o heretic_n and_o while_o you_o will_v make_v most_o or_o much_o of_o christ_n church_n to_o be_v heretic_n you_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v none_o all_o that_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v verax_n no_o liar_n but_o true_a all_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o liar_n but_o true_a of_o his_o word_n believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o say_v w._n ay_o no_o heretic_n believe_v any_o thing_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v that_o be_v because_o god_n that_o reveal_v it_o be_v true_a and_o so_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v true_a because_o he_o reveal_v it_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o who_o know_v other_o man_n heart_n better_a you_o or_o they_o you_o take_v i_o its_o like_a for_o a_o heretic_n i_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o i_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o god_n the_o ●…evealer_n be_v true_a you_o say_v then_o i_o be_o no_o heretic_n if_o a_o arrian_n can_v but_o true_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v all_o god_n word_n to_o be_v true_a but_o he_o take_v not_o christ_n consubstantial_a eternal_a deity_n to_o be_v god_n word_n you_o will_v justify_v he_o to_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o yet_o the_o poor_a iconoclast_n the_o waldenses_n the_o berengarian_o can_v find_v no_o place_n in_o this_o man_n church_n when_o yet_o he_o thus_o acquit_v almost_o all_o heretic_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n nothing_o but_o humorous_a singularity_n can_v pretend_v any_o probable_a reason_n why_o a_o arrian_n a_o nestorian_a a_o eutychian_a a_o monothelite_n yea_o a_o mahometan_a or_o other_o infidel_n may_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o liar_n but_o all_o that_o be_v indeed_o his_o word_n be_v true_a §_o 14._o but_o he_o will_v not_o be_v unreasonable_a without_o reason_n his_o argument_n be_v whosoever_o believe_v the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o must_v believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v as_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n as_o be_v the_o article_n which_o he_o believe_v protest_v to_o and_o believe_v nothing_o as_o reveal_v which_o be_v as_o sufficient_o declare_v to_o he_o to_o be_v erroneous_a and_o not_o reveal_v etc._n etc._n but_o every_o heretic_n do_v otherwise_o if_o he_o believe_v some_o and_o refuse_v other_o equal_o propound_v it_o be_v not_o for_o divine_a authority_n answ._n if_o you_o believe_v this_o reason_n yourself_o you_o deserve_v little_a belief_n from_o other_o 1._o the_o word_n sufficient_o propound_v will_v never_o sufficient_o be_v expound_v by_o you_o nor_o ever_o be_v like_a to_o be_v sometime_o by_o sufficient_a as_o in_o the_o dominican_n controversy_n of_o sufficient_a grace_n be_v mean_v that_o which_o quo_fw-la posito_fw-la res_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o so_o take_v as_o necessarium_fw-la or_o possible_a for_o the_o minimum_fw-la tale_n it_o have_v no_o degree_n but_o usual_o we_o take_v sufficient_a in_o such_o a_o latitude_n as_o that_o thing_n may_v be_v in_o many_o degree_n one_o more_o sufficient_a than_o another_o that_o be_v more_o apt_a and_o powerful_a to_o produce_v the_o effect_n and_o for_o the_o first_o remember_v that_o if_o you_o judge_v so_o merciful_o of_o heretic_n as_o that_o no_o one_o be_v such_o that_o have_v not_o a_o proposal_n in_o the_o very_a first_o sense_n sufficient_a you_o can_v call_v no_o arrian_n nor_o photinian_n or_o gnostick_n a_o heretic_n till_o you_o know_v that_o the_o proposal_n be_v to_o he_o sufficient_a and_o how_o much_o less_o can_v you_o call_v the_o nestorian_n or_o eutychian_o or_o the_o abassine_n syrian_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n heretic_n when_o you_o know_v they_o not_o and_o know_v not_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o proposal_n and_o to_o know_v that_o a_o proposal_n be_v sufficient_a to_o nestorius_n eutyches_n or_o dioscorus_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o sufficient_a proposal_n to_o all_o other_o that_o go_v under_o such_o name_n either_o then_o or_o now_o who_o know_v not_o that_o a_o unlearned_a man_n have_v need_v of_o clear_a and_o oft_o teach_v than_o the_o learned_a and_o one_o that_o by_o education_n be_v prepossess_v with_o contrary_a conception_n have_v need_v of_o more_o than_o the_o unprejudiced_a and_o one_o that_o be_v corrupt_v by_o sensual_a lust_n have_v need_v of_o more_o than_o the_o temperate_a and_o what_o man_n be_v well_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o measure_n of_o sufficiency_n as_o to_o other_o then_o much_o less_o to_o whole_a nation_n who_o we_o know_v not_o 2._o but_o as_o to_o your_o minor_n which_o by_o the_o word_n as_o sufficient_o show_v that_o you_o take_v sufficiency_n as_o it_o have_v degree_n here_o you_o seem_v plain_o to_o absolve_v all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n e._n g._n as_o if_o a_o monothelite_n be_v no_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o sufficient_o in_o degree_n reveal_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o will_n as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n and_o rise_v again_o or_o as_o if_o a_o arrian_n be_v no_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o sufficient_o reveal_v that_o christ_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o die_v 3._o and_o the_o supposition_n in_o your_o minor_n be_v notorious_o false_a that_o all_o heretic_n have_v as_o sufficient_a a_o proposal_n of_o all_o they_o deny_v as_o of_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v for_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n reveal_v be_v not_o equal_o plain_a and_o intelligible_a than_o the_o proposal_n be_v not_o equal_o sufficient_a but_o &c_n &c_n can_v any_o man_n not_o blind_v by_o faction_n believe_v that_o god_n have_v no_o more_o plain_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n die_v rose_n and_o ascend_v than_o that_o he_o have_v two_o distinct_a will_n or_o that_o he_o have_v but_o one_o person_n or_o that_o his_o mother_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o parent_n of_o god_n and_o one_o that_o do_v beget_v and_o bring_v forth_o god_n and_o that_o god_n die_v yea_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n and_o yet_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o only_o from_o the_o same_o substance_n but_o the_o same_o substance_n though_o these_o be_v equal_o true_a they_o be_v not_o equal_o clear_a and_o evident_a do_v the_o quartodecimani_n the_o luciferian_o the_o jovinians_n deny_v truth_n as_o sufficient_o propose_v as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o a_o christ_n if_o you_o say_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o equal_o propose_v in_o scripture_n yet_o they_o be_v by_o council_n or_o tradition_n i_o answer_v 1._o be_v they_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o denial_n heresy_n for_o 300_o year_n before_o the_o first_o general_n council_n 2._o when_o they_o of_o constance_n and_o basil_n be_v for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o council_n as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o they_o of_o lateran_n and_o florence_n against_o they_o when_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n decree_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o
shall_v be_v save_v that_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n true_o and_o practical_o 5._o i_o have_v prove_v that_o your_o definition_n absolve_v more_o from_o 〈◊〉_d and_o schism_n than_o i_o do_v but_o it_o be_v here_o to_o be_v note_v that_o this_o man_n make_v multitude_n to_o be_v under_o the_o papal_a head_n that_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o christ_n our_o head_n and_o so_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o church_n of_o his_o own_o that_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n church_n §_o 7._o i_o note_a that_o either_o their_o church_n have_v define_v that_o 〈◊〉_d and_o s●…hismaticks_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n or_o not_o if_o not_o how_o can_v he_o stand_v to_o it_o and_o impose_v it_o on_o i_o if_o they_o have_v than_o their_o doctor_n that_o say_v the_o contrary_a name_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v all_o 〈◊〉_d themselves_o he_o say_v none_o of_o we_o ever_o hold_v they_o part_n as_o you_o do_v that_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o charity_n answ._n be_v not_o this_o man_n hard_o put_v to_o it_o all_o this_o while_n he_o have_v be_v dispute_v we_o and_o all_o call_v by_o their_o usurp_a censure_n heretic_n out_o of_o the_o church_n visible_a and_o call_v on_o i_o to_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o our_o church_n visible_a and_o tell_v i_o that_o without_o a_o more_o visible_a head_n than_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o visible_a and_o yet_o now_o it_o be_v but_o the_o invisible_a church_n as_o head_v by_o christ_n and_o endow_v with_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n which_o these_o doctor_n of_o they_o exclude_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n from_o §_o 8._o i_o say_v arrian_n be_v no_o christian_n deny_v christ_n essence_n he_o reply_v true_a and_o so_o do_v all_o h●…reticks_n i_o answer_v if_o indeed_o they_o do_v so_o not_o only_o in_o word_n not_o understand_v but_o in_o the_o und●…tood_v sense_n so_o that_o this_o be_v real_o their_o belief_n and_o real_o exclusive_a of_o the_o contrary_a truth_n i_o place_v no_o such_o heretic_n in_o the_o church_n he_o prove_v his_o charge_n thus_o whosoever_o deny_v christ_n most_o infallible_a veracity_n and_o divine_a authority_n deny_v somewhat_o essential_a to_o christ_n but_o so_o do_v every_o heretic_n proper_o call_v answ._n away_o with_o such_o heretic_n as_o do_v so_o indeed_o for_o the_o minor_a he_o come_v to_o the_o old_a obscurity_n whosoever_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o to_o be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n deny_v christ_n verity_n and_o divine_a authority_n but_o so_o do_v every_o heretic_n answ._n i_o have_v oft_o enough_o show_v 1._o that_o the_o argument_n be_v useless_a because_o no_o man_n can_v judge_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n till_o they_o come_v to_o very_o high_a degree_n as_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o other_o men._n 2._o that_o the_o major_n be_v false_a for_o a_o man_n that_o doubt_v not_o of_o christ_n verity_n and_o authority_n may_v not_o understand_v and_o so_o may_v deny_v many_o truth_n sufficient_o propound_v hinder_v the_o understanding_n of_o they_o by_o sloth_n senfuality_n partiality_n prejudice_n or_o other_o fault_n can_v any_o man_n doubt_v of_o this_o 3._o that_o his_o minor_a also_o be_v false_a he_o may_v be_v a_o heretic_n that_o deny_v that_o which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o propose_v if_o his_o own_o crime_n either_o blind_n his_o mind_n or_o forfeit_v better_a proposal_n cause_v the_o insufficiency_n §_o 9_o i_o note_v how_o they_o charge_v one_o another_o with_o pelagianism_n and_o he_o say_v not_o in_o the_o point_n of_o original_a sin_n answ._n and_o be_v all_o the_o rest_n come_v now_o to_o be_v no_o heresy_n be_v it_o for_o nothing_o else_o that_o they_o be_v judge_v heretic_n the_o rest_n shall_v have_v as_o fair_a play_n if_o your_o interest_n be_v but_o as_o much_o for_o it_o §_o 10._o but_o say_v he_o who_o ever_o before_o you_o say_v that_o the_o catholick-church_n can_v be_v divide_v itself_o when_o it_o be_v a_o most_o perfect_a unity_n a_o grand_a novelty_n of_o you_o answ._n this_o be_v because_o i_o say_v that_o some_o make_v division_n in_o the_o church_n that_o divide_v not_o from_o it_o much_o less_o from_o the_o whole_a i_o prove_v before_o that_o in_o this_o sense_n paul_n usual_o speak_v against_o schism_n or_o division_n as_o when_o he_o tell_v the_o corinthian_n of_o the_o division_n among_o they_o etc._n etc._n but_o this_o man_n will_v make_v scripture_n and_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n to_o be_v grand_a novelty_n may_v there_o not_o be_v division_n in_o a_o house_n in_o a_o kingdom_n in_o a_o army_n in_o a_o particular_a congregation_n as_o that_o at_o corinth_n and_o that_o after_o which_o clement_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o heal_v have_v there_o not_o be_v abundance_n of_o such_o at_o alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n be_v there_o no_o division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o part_n cleave_v to_o one_o pope_n and_o part_n to_o another_o for_o above_o forty_o year_n do_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n meet_v to_o heal_v their_o schism_n upon_o mistake_n when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o do_v all_o their_o historian_n erroneous_o number_v their_o schism_n reader_n pardon_v my_o oft_o answer_v such_o bold_a abuse_n these_o be_v their_o arguer_n that_o hope_v to_o subvert_v england_n §_o 11._o and_o his_o reason_n be_v such_o as_o will_v show_v he_o a_o catharist_n viz._n the_o church_n be_v a_o most_o perfect_a unity_n if_o so_o than_o all_o grace_n be_v perfect_a which_o be_v necessary_a to_o perfect_a unity_n then_o the_o pope_n and_o anti-popes_n the_o war_a papalines_n and_o imperialist_n the_o jesuit_n dominican_n and_o jansinist_n be_v all_o at_o perfect_a unity_n then_o there_o be_v no_o disagreement_n of_o judgement_n will_n or_o practice_n among_o any_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n no_o volume_n write_v against_o other_o alas_o how_o far_o be_v such_o word_n from_o prove_v it_o or_o from_o end_v their_o present_a controversy_n or_o war_n watson_n and_o preston_n have_v scarce_o perfect_a unity_n with_o father_n parson_n and_o the_o jesuit_n do_v perfect_a unity_n draw_v all_o the_o blood_n between_o france_n and_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n or_o in_o france_n between_z king_n hen._n ●…d_n and_o the_o leaguer_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o true_a christian_n have_v a_o true_a unity_n in_o christ_n with_o each_o as_o his_o member_n but_o that_o this_o unity_n among_o themselves_o be_v sad_o imperfect_a and_o so_o be_v when_o they_o have_v all_o the_o contention_n in_o many_o general_a council_n and_o when_o the_o people_n have_v oft_o fight_v it_o out_o to_o blood_n about_o religion_n and_o the_o choice_n of_o bishop_n at_o alexandria_n rome_n etc._n etc._n be_v this_o perfection_n it_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o we_o hope_v for_o perfect_a unity_n where_o all_o be_v perfect_a §_o 12._o i_o tell_v he_o heresy_n be_v a_o personal_a crime_n the_o nation_n can_v be_v charge_v with_o it_o without_o better_a proof_n he_o say_v if_o he_o have_v 1._o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o of_o our_o writer_n answ._n alas_o poor_a kingdom_n of_o christian_n that_o can_v be_v prove_v heretic_n if_o pet._n heylin_n or_o any_o one_o of_o our_o writer_n do_v but_o say_v it_o 2._o he_o tell_v a_o story_n of_o prestor_n john_n send_v to_o rome_n for_o instruction_n answ._n confute_v so_o oft_o and_o by_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o repeat_v it_o nor_o do_v that_o prove_v they_o so_o much_o as_o papist_n much_o less_o heretic_n 3._o that_o their_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n prove_v they_o eutychian_o in_o that_o they_o name_v the_o three_o former_a council_n and_o not_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n answ._n small_a proof_n will_v serve_v the_o turn_n with_o such_o willing_a man_n what_o if_o dioscorus_n make_v they_o believe_v that_o that_o council_n do_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o cyril_n which_o he_o very_o think_v be_v the_o same_o which_o he_o defend_v and_o reject_v the_o nicene_n creed_n which_o he_o appeal_v to_o and_o that_o they_o divide_v christ_n may_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o neighbour_n egyptian_a bishop_n put_v they_o out_o of_o conceit_n with_o that_o council_n though_o they_o own_v no_o heresy_n do_v not_o your_o writer_n now_o ordinary_o quit_v they_o of_o such_o heresy_n do_v they_o that_o disow_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n or_o basil_n own_o all_o the_o error_n or_o schism_n which_o they_o condemn_v you_o justify_v the_o abassine_n when_o you_o tell_v man_n that_o your_o calumny_n have_v no_o better_o show_v of_o truth_n §_o 13._o erasmus_n lament_v the_o age_n when_o it_o become_v a_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a wit_n and_o subtlety_n to_o be_v a_o christian._n this_o seem_v about_o cyril_n day_n when_o
those_o general_a council_n in_o all_o their_o decree_n constitution_n and_o canon_n intend_v to_o oblige_v all_o christian_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o thereby_o demonstrate_v themselves_o to_o have_v jurisdiction_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o insinuate_v that_o their_o authority_n be_v limit_v within_o the_o precinct_n of_o the_o empire_n answ._n 1._o i_o have_v prove_v the_o contrary_a at_o large_a already_o 2._o they_o may_v well_o commend_v their_o decree_n or_o judgement_n to_o all_o christian_n on_o two_o account_n 1._o for_o concord_n sake_n it_o be_v desirable_a that_o all_o christian_n shall_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o way_n 2._o ratione_fw-la rei_fw-la decret●…_n and_o so_o all_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v the_o same_o truth_n that_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o poor_a city_n excommunicate_v a_o man_n just_o for_o heresy_n all_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n that_o know_v it_o be_v bind_v to_o deny_v communion_n to_o that_o man_n and_o so_o cyprian_n commend_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o deny_v communion_n to_o felicissimus_n partly_o because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o keep_v concord_n with_o all_o christian_n and_o order_n and_o partly_o because_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o avoid_v heretic_n and_o yet_o such_o a_o bishop_n be_v not_o governor_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n nor_o cyprian_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v your_o proof_n §_o 26._o i._n thus_o say_v w._n 1_n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n say_v their_o decree_n be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a world_n answ._n i_o do_v not_o mean_v to_o search_v so_o large_a a_o volumn_n to_o find_v where_o see_v you_o tell_v i_o not_o where_o when_o as_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o be_v dispute_v with_o that_o know_v not_o how_o common_o then_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v call_v totus_fw-la orbis_n and_o even_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v tax_v by_o augustus_n how_o oft_o do_v nazianzen_n complain_v that_o the_o bishop_n and_o council_n have_v distract_v and_o divide_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o also_o that_o all_o that_o be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n e._n g._n the_o work_v of_o augustine_n chrysostome_n etc._n etc._n §_o 27._o ii_o say_v he_o thus_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n act._n 7._o declare_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n to_o have_v under_o its_o government_n arabia_n answ._n but_o do_v you_o think_v that_o no_o part_n of_o arabia_n be_v in_o the_o empire_n look_v but_o in_o the_o map_n of_o the_o empire_n if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o notice_n and_o you_o will_v be_v put_v hard_a to_o it_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o mean_v the_o rest_n of_o arabia_n §_o 28._o iii_o and_o act_v 16._o c._n 28._o say_v he_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o const._n shall_v have_v under_o he_o certain_a church_n in_o barbarous_a nation_n which_o you_o must_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v under_o the_o empire_n answ._n 1._o i_o think_v you_o must_v have_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n who_o undertake_v to_o prove_v it_o as_o you_o affirm_v it_o 2._o but_o see_v papist_n lie_v man_n salvation_n upon_o such_o skill_n in_o history_n cosmography_n and_o chronology_n which_o this_o great_a disputer_n have_v so_o little_a of_o himself_o we_o must_v study_v it_o better_o for_o the_o time_n come_v and_o i_o do_v full_o prove_v to_o you_o before_o that_o the_o sauromat●…_n many_o of_o the_o scythian_n and_o goth_n be_v conquer_v and_o in_o the_o empire_n and_o barbarian_n be_v in_o the_o empire_n and_o by_o the_o way_n note_v 1._o that_o this_o ●…uncil_n of_o chalcedon_n even_o write_v to_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n tell_v he_o that_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o sanction_n of_o the_o most_o pious_a emperor_n not_o mention_v any_o call_n of_o leo_n 2._o that_o the_o emperor_n martian_a in_o his_o decree_n against_o heretic_n and_o for_o this_o council_n sai_z all_z man_n must_v believe_v as_o athanasius_n theophylus_fw-la and_o cyril_n believe_v not_o name_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o cyril_n praefuit_fw-la concilio_n ephesino_n not_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v it_o or_o cyril_n as_o his_o vicar_n and_o that_o the_o council-bishop_n contemptuous_o against_o the_o roman_n cry_v out_o they_o that_o gainsay_v let_v they_o walk_v to_o rome_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o last_o canon_n against_o the_o pope_n dissent_n §_o 29._o iu._n next_o he_o say_v nicephorus_n l._n 5._o c._n 16._o say_v that_o leo_n the_o emperor_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o province_n together_o circularibus_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la literis_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la missis_fw-la leo_fw-la haec_fw-la sic_fw-la ad_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopos_fw-la misit_fw-la which_o he_o account_v be_v above_o a_o thousand_o to_o have_v they_o subscribe_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n answ._n some_o man_n perceive_v not_o when_o they_o consute_n themselves_o 1._o i_o tell_v you_o totus_fw-la orbis_n be_v a_o common_a title_n of_o the_o empire_n 2._o have_v leo_n any_o power_n out_o of_o the_o empire_n his_o command_n show_v that_o they_o be_v his_o subject_n that_o he_o write_v to_o 3._o be_v any_o call_v or_o write_v to_o under_o the_o name_n of_o province_n but_o the_o roman_a province_n 4._o do_v you_o think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o bishop_n in_o the_o empire_n yea_o many_o thousand_o if_o poor_a ireland_n have_v as_o many_o hundred_o as_o ninius_n speak_v of_o 5._o but_o remember_v hence_o that_o if_o all_o bishop_n be_v write_v to_o than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v write_v to_o to_o subscribe_v the_o 28_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o he_o refuse_v as_o papist_n say_v but_o indeed_o the_o epistle_n that_o niceph._n there_o mention_v c._n 16._o be_v but_o to_o inquire_v of_o all_o the_o bishop_n whether_o they_o stand_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n or_o no_o and_o what_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n they_o be_v for_o to_o save_v the_o call_n of_o a_o new_a council_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o write_v only_o to_o his_o subject_n §_o 30._o v._n next_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o second_o armenia_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n write_v a_o answer_n and_o adelphus_n bishop_n of_o arabia_n subscribe_v among_o the_o rest_n to_o this_o epistle_n answ._n 1._o he_o tell_v i_o ●…ot_v where_o to_o find_v any_o of_o this_o in_o nicephorus_n there_o i_o find_v it_o not_o 2._o but_o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o part_n of_o both_o the_o armenia_n be_v roman_a province_n he_o may_v see_v it_o in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o in_o the_o map_n and_o history_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o of_o arabia_n i_o speak_v before_o §_o 31._o vi_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o second_o messia_n which_o you_o must_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v then_o under_o the_o empire_n write_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a deliver_v the_o faith_n toti_fw-la terrarum_fw-la orbi_fw-la and_o style_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v gather_v by_o pope_n leo_n command_n answ._n here_o be_v neither_o matter_n nor_o authority_n worthy_a a_o answer_n 1._o he_o cit_v no_o author_n for_o what_o he_o say_v 2._o whether_o he_o mean_v messua_n or_o messia_n or_o messina_n they_o be_v all_o in_o the_o empire_n but_o what_o he_o mean_v i_o know_v not_o since_o i_o find_v in_o his_o errat_fw-la messia_n r._n toti_n but_o where_o or_o what_o toti_n mean_v my_o cosmographer_n tell_v i_o not_o if_o it_o be_v tottaium_fw-la that_o he_o mean_v it_o be_v a_o city_n of_o bythinia_n under_o the_o archbishop_n of_o nice_a but_o it_o seem_v he_o dare_v not_o say_v it_o be_v in_o the_o empire_n but_o instead_o of_o prove_v it_o in_o i_o must_v prove_v it_o out_o without_o know_v place_n or_o author_n 2._o he_o that_o yet_o understand_v not_o the_o roman_n terrarum_fw-la orbem_fw-la and_o he_o that_o read_v history_n can_v believe_v that_o pope_n leo_n call_v the_o council_n at_o chalcedon_n be_v not_o to_o be_v convince_v by_o i_o if_o he_o maintain_v that_o the_o turk_n call_v it_o he_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o no_o cite_a author_n of_o a_o epistle_n subscribe_v by_o dita_fw-la bishop_n of_o odyss●…_n in_o scythia_n which_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o till_o i_o know_v the_o epistle_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v know_v that_o odyssus_n be_v a_o city_n of_o mysia_n near_o the_o euxine_a sea_n within_o the_o empire_n §_o 32._o vii_o his_o last_o instance_n be_v considerable_a viz._n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n
constitute_v the_o essence_n and_o shall_v i_o obey_v a_o trifler_n so_o far_o as_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o more_o syllogism_n for_o this_o §_o 8._o but_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a and_o say_v that_o protestant_n profess_v not_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o i_o prove_v it_o thus_o those_o that_o profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n upon_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v etc._n etc._n here_o the_o trifler_n want_n all_o again_o and_o then_o deny_v the_o minor_n i_o prove_v the_o minor_a by_o several_a argument_n 1._o all_o that_o profess_v faith_n in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n our_o creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n and_o love_n to_o he_o and_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o all_o his_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o holy_a scripture_n with_o willingness_n and_o diligence_n to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o all_o these_o law_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a and_o with_o repentance_n for_o all_o know_a sin_n do_v profess_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v salvation_n upon_o which_o i_o prove_v by_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o the_o trifler_n want_v form_n again_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v leave_v out_o when_o i_o cite_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n itself_o viz_o jo●…_n 3._o 16._o 17._o mark_v 16_o 16._o heb._n 5._o 9_o rom._n 8._o 28._o 1._o act._n 26._o 18._o and_o after_o all_o this_o what_o be_v it_o that_o he_o deny_v why_o this_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v willingness_n and_o diligence_n to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o all_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o scripture_n answ._n this_o be_v the_o man_n of_o form_n that_o sly_o put_v in_o having_n willingness_n instead_o of_o profess_v it_o when_o he_o see_v and_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o what_o say_v man_n have_v which_o god_n only_o know_v but_o what_o they_o pro●…ess_n that_o we_o dispute_v of_o and_o whether_o we_o profess_v such_o willingness_n to_o understand_v if_o our_o word_n our_o oath_n and_o all_o our_o book_n and_o confession_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n will_v not_o prove_v it_o let_v this_o man_n word_n go_v for_o a_o disproof_n we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o transubstantiation_n reason_v where_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v §_o 9_o but_o he_o add_v a_o reason_n because_o else_o they_o will_v take_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o not_o follow_v novel_a int●…pretations_n and_o private_a judgement_n answ._n this_o cant_n must_v delude_v the_o ignorant_a that_o never_o read_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o know_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o do_v not_o we_o profess_v to_o prefer_v that_o which_o be_v most_o ancient_a before_o that_o which_o be_v novel_a but_o these_o man_n must_v have_v we_o e._n g._n believe_v that_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n which_o a_o sect_n late_o and_o sacrilegious_o introduce_v or_o else_o we_o have_v a_o novel_a and_o private_a interpretation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n when_o the_o most_o brazen_a face_v of_o they_o can_v deny_v that_o their_o own_o way_n herein_o be_v novel_a and_o the_o contrary_a as_o old_a as_o christ_n institution_n and_o that_o they_o be_v singular_a as_o differ_v from_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n upon_o earth_n the_o same_o i_o may_v say_v of_o most_o other_o of_o our_o difference_n 2._o when_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n write_v a_o commentary_n on_o the_o bible_n where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o exposition_n of_o it_o how_o little_a of_o the_o bible_n have_v general_a council_n expound_v if_o you_o mean_v not_o they_o what_o mean_v you_o sure_o all_o your_o laity_n have_v not_o expound_v it_o nor_o all_o your_o clergy_n yea_o their_o commentary_n yea_o and_o translation_n fight_v with_o one_o another_o where_o be_v your_o universal_a commentary_n if_o you_o have_v such_o a_o work_n will_v your_o talk_n make_v we_o ignorant_a that_o papist_n be_v not_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o if_o it_o be_v council_n you_o mean_v which_o of_o they_o be_v it_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v and_o why_o that_o at_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o pisa_n or_o that_o at_o florence_n or_o the_o later●…ne_a that_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la contradict_v they_o the_o first_o and_o second_o at_o ephesus_n or_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n which_o contradict_v the_o first_o indeed_o and_o the_o second_o profess_o the_o 28_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n or_o the_o pope_n that_o abhor_v it_o the_o general_a council_n at_o ariminum_n syrmium_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o the_o world_n be_v say_v to_o groan_v to_o find_v itself_o turn_v arrian_n shall_v we_o at_o the_o 2d_o council_z of_o ephesus_z have_v follow_v the_o great_a number_n when_o there_o be_v not_o one_o refuser_n of_o eutychianism_n save_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o binnius_n say_v that_o sola_fw-la navicula_fw-la petri_n only_a peter_n ship_n escape_v drown_v do_v rome_n follow_v the_o most_o when_o melch._n canus_n tell_v we_o that_o most_o of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n have_v fight_v against_o the_o roman_a privilege_n be_v it_o a_o convince_a way_n to_o have_v such_o a_o pope_n as_o eugenius_n four_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o differ_v from_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o also_o be_v damn_v by_o his_o own_o church_n or_o general_n council_n and_o to_o say_v you_o do_v not_o receive_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n nor_o be_v willing_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n because_o you_o take_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n when_o you_o have_v blind_v we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v a_o domineer_a sect_n that_o live_v not_o by_o the_o word_n but_o by_o the_o sword_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o your_o decretal_n to_o be_v the_o church_n exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n that_o be_v against_o you_o to_o be_v novelty_n and_o your_o many_o novelty_n to_o be_v all_o the_o ancient_a truth_n such_o as_o pet._n moulin_n de_fw-fr novitate_fw-la papismi_fw-la have_v lay_v open_a by_o that_o time_n we_o may_v think_v that_o the_o church_n want_v a_o essential_a art●…ole_n of_o christianity_n which_o take_v not_o all_o the_o pope_n exposition_n of_o scripture_n but_o see_v this_o be_v the_o great_a damn_v charge_n against_o the_o protestant_n faith_n i_o pray_v you_o tell_v we_o next_o 1._o do_v all_o the_o christian_a church_n want_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o christianity_n in_o all_o those_o age_n before_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v they_o any_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o exposition_n have_v they_o beside_o each_o church_n pastor_n for_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n and_o what_o exposition_n do_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a make_v save_v about_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o easter_n day_n or_o such_o thing_n that_o indeed_o be_v deliver_v not_o as_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n but_o tradition_n of_o rule_n of_o order_n and_o what_o exposition_n make_v any_o of_o the_o old_a general_n council_n save_v about_o the_o nature_n and_o person_n and_o will_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n policy_n which_o suarez_n de_fw-fr legi●…_n say_v god_n make_v no_o law_n for_o where_o be_v their_o commentary_n 3._o where_o shall_v we_o find_v any_o commentary_n that_o the_o father_n agree_v in_o though_o the_o trent-oath_n be_v that_o you_o will_v not_o exp●…nd_v the_o scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o father_n consent_n your_o writer_n tell_v we_o that_o most_o who_o work_n be_v come_v to_o we_o for_o the_o first_o 300_o year_n be_v millenaries_n dionys._n petavius_n have_v gather_v the_o word_n of_o arrian_n doctrine_n from_o most_o of_o they_o lib._n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la till_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a yea_o that_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o anti-arrians_a even_o athanassus_fw-la himself_o supposit●…_n be_v for_o three_o god_n tell_v we_o that_o as_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n be_v three_o name_n but_o one_o in_o essence_n that_o be_v in_o specie_fw-la so_o be_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n when_o your_o doctor_n tell_v we_o that_o justin_n clem._n alexander_n dionysius_n alexand._n talianus_fw-la tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n eysebius_fw-la and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o more_o teach_v heresy_n and_o chrysostom_n basil_n and_o many_o other_o that_o we_o hope_v have_v be_v christian_n be_v note_v as_o fautor_n of_o origen_n and_o even_o many_o of_o the_o martyr_n be_v heretic_n when_o through_o the_o reign_n of_o theodosius_n senior_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n theodosius_n junior_n valentinian_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o constantius_n and_o valens_n etc._n etc._n of_o
the_o arrian_n yea_o and_o of_o marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastaslus_fw-la justine_n almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n continue_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o heresy_n and_o council_n charge_v and_o condemn_v council_n bishop_n depose_v and_o curse_v bishop_n and_o monk_n as_o their_o soldier_n fight_v it_o out_o to_o blood_n when_o the_o obey_a or_o curse_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n divide_v the_o bishop_n for_o many_o prince_n reign_v and_o when_o one_o part_n call_v the_o other_o nestorian_n and_o the_o other_o call_v they_o eutychian_o almost_o every_o where_o and_o when_o after_o that_o the_o monothelite_n cause_n be_v in_o many_o emperor_n reign_n uppermost_a one_o while_n and_o down_o another_o and_o navicula_fw-la petri_n that_o alone_o escape_v before_o be_v thus_o drown_v by_o honorius_n if_o council_n belie_v he_o not_o and_o pope_n with_o the_o rest_n when_o the_o very_a same_o bishop_n as_o at_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n go_v one_o way_n in_o one_o council_n and_o another_o way_n in_o the_o next_o and_o subscribe_v to_o one_o edict_n e._n g._n of_o basiliscus_n and_o quick_o to_o the_o contrary_a of_o another_o and_o cry_v 〈◊〉_d we_o do_v it_o through_o fear_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o know_v by_o father_n bishop_n and_o council_n what_o be_v their_o concordant_a commentary_n of_o the_o scripture_n 4._o i_o ask_v you_o what_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v it_o that_o we_o profess_v to_o differ_v from_o for_o our_o novelty_n name_v they_o if_o you_o can_v either_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n you_o mean_v proper_o all_o christian_n or_o most_o if_o all_o alas_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o agreement_n in_o any_o more_o than_o we_o hold_v with_o they_o if_o most_o do_v we_o not_o know_v that_o the_o most_o two_o part_n to_o one_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o your_o church_n do_v not_o the_o greek_n once_o a_o year_n excommunicate_a or_o curse_v you_o to_o tell_v we_o now_o that_o above_o two_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o the_o three_o part_n be_v that_o universal_a which_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v no_o christian_n be_v word_n that_o deserve_v indignation_n and_o not_o belief_n and_o without_o the_o medium_n of_o sword_n and_o flame_n and_o torment_a inquisition_n on_o one_o side_n and_o great_a bishopric_n and_o abbey_n wealth_n ease_n and_o domination_n on_o the_o other_o have_v long_o ago_o be_v scorn_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n §_o 10._o but_o he_o also_o deny_v that_o we_o believe_v with_o a_o save_v divine_a faith_n any_o of_o the_o say_a mystery_n and_o that_o our_o profession_n general_a and_o particular_a affirm_v it_o answ._n it_o be_v like_o the_o devil_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n will_v deny_v it_o too_o of_o our_o heart_n we_o will_v not_o enter_v a_o dispute_n of_o our_o profession_n let_v our_o book_n be_v witness_n reader_n can_v thou_o believe_v that_o we_o profess_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o christian_a verity_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n yea_o but_o the_o man_n mean_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o divine_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o beleif_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o party_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v the_o pope_n own_o authority_n §_o 11._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v those_o that_o profess_v as_o much_o and_o much_o more_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o the_o catechuman_n be_v ordinary_o teach_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o competentes_fw-la at_o baptism_n do_v profess_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o he_o call_v for_o form_n again_o as_o if_o here_o be_v no_o universal_a and_o then_o deny_v the_o major_a but_o his_o word_n show_v that_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o minor_a because_o the_o catechuman_n profess_v to_o believe_v implicit_o all_o that_o be_v teach_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o that_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o answ._n a_o unproved_a fiction_n on_o both_o part_n 1._o show_v we_o in_o father_n council_n or_o any_o true_a church-record_n that_o catechuman_n be_v then_o use_v to_o make_v any_o other_o exposition_n of_o those_o word_n than_o we_o do_v do_v they_o ever_o profess_v that_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v the_o fide_fw-la do_v they_o not_o call_v many_o of_o those_o council_n general_n though_o violent_a and_o erroneous_a which_o they_o curse_v the_o great_a doubt_n than_o be_v which_o party_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o christian_n then_o judge_v not_o of_o faith_n by_o the_o churchman_n but_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o faith_n else_o they_o have_v not_o so_o oft_o reject_v and_o hereticate_v many_o pope_n patriarch_n and_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o they_o do_v 2._o and_o protestant_n deny_v no_o article_n which_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la et_fw-la semper_fw-la as_o lerinen_n speak_v be_v account_v necessary_a to_o ●…ation_n yea_o it_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o they_o can_v be_v papist_n because_o most_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v against_o the_o papacy_n and_o all_o be_v against_o it_o or_o without_o it_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n let_v the_o reader_n peruse_v cyril_n hieros_n catech._n august_n and_o all_o other_o that_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o the_o church_n catechism_n and_o see_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o be_v infallible_a in_o himself_o or_o with_o his_o council_n and_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v all_o that_o they_o say_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o say_v it_o or_o else_o we_o can_v be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n to_o become_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n if_o they_o can_v persuade_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o none_o but_o their_o subject_n can_v be_v save_v 3._o and_o what_o a_o useless_a thing_n to_o they_o make_v god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o their_o own_o exposition_n in_o its_o stead_n we_o know_v that_o the_o word_n suppose_v that_o the_o ignorant_a must_v have_v teacher_n without_o teach_v child_n can_v so_o much_o as_o learn_v to_o speak_v and_o oportet_fw-la discentem_fw-la credere_fw-la fide_fw-la humanâ_fw-la that_o be_v he_o must_v suppose_v his_o teacher_n wise_a than_o himself_o or_o else_o how_o can_v he_o judge_v he_o fit_a to_o teach_v he_o but_o what_o be_v teach_v but_o teach_v the_o learner_n to_o know_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o the_o teacher_n do_v by_o the_o same_o evidence_n be_v it_o only_o to_o know_v what_o the_o teacher_n hold_v without_o know_v why_o if_o so_o must_v we_o know_v it_o by_o word_n or_o write_v if_o by_o word_n only_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v every_o man_n and_o woman_n come_v to_o be_v catechize_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v by_o all_o the_o christian_n world_n or_o be_v every_o priest_n the_o universal_a church_n or_o be_v he_o infallible_a and_o how_o come_v word_n speak_v to_o be_v more_o intelligible_a than_o word_n write_v do_v writing_n make_v they_o unintelligible_a why_o then_o be_v their_o council_n and_o commentary_n write_v but_o if_o write_v will_v serve_v why_o not_o god_n writing_n as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o god_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o these_o word_n intelligible_a till_o a_o pope_n expound_v they_o when_o the_o pope_n permit_v his_o casuist_n to_o expound_v they_o so_o as_o that_o love_v god_n once_o a_o month_n or_o once_o a_o year_n will_v serve_v for_o salvation_n and_o that_o attrition_n which_o be_v repeat_v only_o out_o of_o fear_n with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n will_v also_o serve_v can_v a_o man_n be_v save_v that_o believe_v repent_v and_o love_v god_n upon_o the_o bare_a command_n of_o god_n and_o scripture_n without_o hear_v what_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o council_n say_v if_o i_o make_v to_o myself_o no_o grave_v image_n so_o as_o to_o bow_v down_o and_o worship_n towards_o it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n will_v this_o damn_v i_o because_o i_o receive_v not_o the_o papist_n obliteration_n or_o contradiction_n of_o this_o commandment_n as_o a_o exposition_n if_o all_o the_o docree_n of_o council_n be_v as_o necessary_a as_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n why_o be_v not_o the_o council_n read_v in_o the_o
10._o ad_fw-la 11._o 5._o scatus_fw-la in_o prolegom_n in_o sect_n 1._o 6._o greg._n armin._n in_o prol._n e._n g._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o resp._n fol._n 3_o &_o 4._o 7._o guil._n parisian_n de_fw-fr legib._n c._n 16._o p._n 46._o 8._o bellarmine_n again_o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 10._o c._n 10._o ad_fw-la arg_n 5._o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o i_o most_o full_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a church-doctor_n but_o to_o all_o these_o he_o give_v such_o frivolous_a answer_n that_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o weary_a the_o reader_n by_o repeat_v and_o answer_v they_o and_o he_o that_o will_v faithful_o peruse_v the_o author_n word_n i_o think_v will_n either_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n of_o he_o or_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v one_o when_o he_o see_v it_o the_o fore-confuted_n contradiction_n of_o sufficient_a explicit_a and_o yet_o not_o sufficient_a implicit_a be_v the_o chief_a and_o next_o a_o vain_a supposition_n that_o to_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o theological_a point_n and_o conclusion_n be_v less_o than_o to_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n exposition_n he_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o a_o rule_n and_o yet_o their_o council_n need_v exposition_n too_o §_o 22._o iii_o my_o 3d._a argument_n for_o our_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n be_v if_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o christian_n though_o not_o as_o papal_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v their_o own_o therefore_o they_o may_v not_o deny_v the_o consequent_a here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o as_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sequel_n answ._n he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o expository_n term_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n and_o so_o the_o same_o exposition_n in_o the_o consequent_a be_v suppose_v next_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fallacy_n a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la answ._n so_o then_o the_o church_n as_o christian_n be_v not_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la but_o we_o that_o know_v no_o other_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o nor_o to_o prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o any_o other_o than_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n let_v they_o prove_v more_o that_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o next_o he_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v visible_a as_o christian_n be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v pretend_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o he_o deny_v for_o they_o believe_v not_o one_o article_n with_o a_o infallible_a supernatural_a divine_a faith_n answ._n 1._o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o profess_v not_o so_o to_o do_v nay_o rather_o whether_o their_o objective_a faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o creed_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o infallible_a of_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o divine_a he_o that_o deny_v this_o seem_v a_o infidel_n but_o if_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o actual_a subjective_n faith_n that_o be_v of_o supernatural_a divine_a infusion_n then_o 1._o no_o hypocrite_n be_v a_o church-member_n 2._o and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v who_o be_v a_o church-member_n beside_o himself_o 3._o and_o so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v clear_a 2._o i_o must_v not_o too_o oft_o write_v the_o same_o thing_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v peruse_v a_o small_a tract_n of_o my_o call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n he_o shall_v soon_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n faith_n or_o we_o be_v the_o more_o certain_a and_o divine_a of_o which_o also_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o my_o treatise_n call_v the_o safe_a religion_n and_o mr._n pool_n in_o his_o nullity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n §_o 23._o i_o here_o show_v that_o have_v prove_v our_o visibility_n as_o christian_a i_o need_v not_o prove_v a_o visibility_n as_o papal_n any_o more_o than_o he_o that_o will_v prove_v his_o humane_a genealogy_n have_v some_o leprous_a ancestor_n need_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o be_v leprous_a here_o he_o deny_v popery_n to_o be_v leprosy_n and_o again_o false_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v leprous_a which_o need_v no_o more_o confutation_n than_o be_v oft_o give_v it_o §_o 24._o he_o tell_v i_o how_o a_o 1500_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o possession_n and_o we_o dispossess_v he_o without_o order_n etc._n etc._n answ._n a_o old_a cant_n but_o 1._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o he_o never_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 2._o nor_o in_o the_o empire_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n dominion_n but_o by_o humane_a donation_n and_o consent_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o england_n 3._o and_o that_o they_o that_o give_v he_o that_o power_n may_v on_o just_a reason_n take_v it_o away_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o another_o prince_n country_n can_v stand_v here_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o government_n of_o england_n himself_o §_o 25._o iv._o my_o four_o argument_n add_v more_o than_o my_o thesis_n require_v viz._n if_o there_o have_v be_v since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n a_o christian_a church_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o universal_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a both_o in_o its_o be_v and_o in_o its_o freedom_n from_o popery_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o 1._o he_o want_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o yet_o before_o abate_v it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o since_o be_v put_v for_o ever_o since_o 2._o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v that_o the_o sole_a denial_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n constitute_v the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n answ._n in_o despite_n of_o my_o frequent_a profession_n to_o the_o contrary_a who_o still_o tell_v he_o that_o our_o christianity_n and_o relation_n to_o christ_n and_o one_o another_o make_v we_o church-member_n and_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o papacy_n be_v our_o renunciation_n of_o a_o usurper_n §_o 26._o i_o prove_v my_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n can_v 28_o which_o he_o answer_v as_o before_o where_o he_o be_v consute_v §_o 27._o 2._o my_o 2d_o proof_n be_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n athan._n nazianzen_n nissene_n basil_n optatus_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n that_o use_v not_o this_o argument_n of_o pope_n power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o of_o divine_a right_n to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o when_o two_o word_n have_v expeditious_o do_v all_o if_o this_o have_v then_o be_v believe_v here_o he_o say_v their_o author_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o father_n do_v so_o answ._n soon_o say_v and_o as_o soon_o deny_v the_o book_n be_v in_o our_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o you_o i_o will_v now_o instance_n but_o in_o cyprian_n and_o the_o african_a church_n in_o his_o day_n and_o in_o augustine_n and_o the_o same_o church_n in_o his_o day_n 1._o do_v cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n believe_v stephen_n universal_a monarchy_n when_o he_o oppose_v his_o judgement_n with_o so_o much_o vehemency_n and_o set_v the_o scripture_n against_o his_o plea_n from_o tradition_n let_v he_o that_o will_v read_v his_o epistle_n of_o this_o too_o long_o to_o be_v recite_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o can_v and_o when_o he_o twit_v his_o arrogance_n in_o council_n with_o nemo_fw-la nostrum_fw-la se_fw-la dicit_fw-la episcopum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la 2._o the_o plea_n of_o aurelius_n augustine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n i_o have_v former_o recite_v of_o which_o harding_n say_v that_o the_o african_n seduce_v by_o aurelius_n continue_v twenty_o year_n in_o schism_n from_o rome_n and_o do_v augustine_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n then_o believe_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n even_o in_o the_o empire_n i_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o if_o the_o donatis●…s_n novatian_o and_o all_o such_o sect_n have_v believe_v the_o roman_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n they_o have_v not_o so_o differ_v from_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o the_o father_n will_v have_v take_v the_o near_a way_n and_o write_v their_o volume_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o this_o papal_a rule_n be_v it_o that_o must_v end_v all_o their_o controversy_n instead_o of_o write_v voluminous_o from_o scripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o